8402 lines
433 KiB
Plaintext
8402 lines
433 KiB
Plaintext
Please take a look at the important information in this header.
|
|
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
|
|
electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
|
|
|
|
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
|
|
|
|
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
|
|
|
|
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
|
|
further information is included below. We need your donations.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Lost World by Arthur Conan Doyle
|
|
|
|
June, 1994 [Etext #139]
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Lost World by Arthur Conan Doyle
|
|
*******This file should be named lostw10.txt or lostw10.zip********
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, lostw11.txt.
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, lostw10a.txt.
|
|
|
|
|
|
This etext was created by Judith Boss, Omaha, Nebraska. The
|
|
equipment: an IBM-compatible 486/33, a Hewlett-Packard ScanJet
|
|
IIc flatbed scanner, and a copy of Calera Recognition Systems'
|
|
TrueScanRisc OCR program donated by Calera.
|
|
|
|
|
|
We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
|
|
of the official release dates, for time for better editing. We
|
|
have this as a goal to accomplish by the end of the year but we
|
|
cannot guarantee to stay that far ahead every month after that.
|
|
|
|
Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
|
|
midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
|
|
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
|
|
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
|
|
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
|
|
and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
|
|
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
|
|
in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
|
|
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
|
|
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
|
|
new copy has at least one byte more or less.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
|
|
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $4
|
|
million dollars per hour this year as we release some eight text
|
|
files per month: thus upping our productivity from $2 million.
|
|
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
|
|
which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
|
|
of the year 2001.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg
|
|
P. O. Box 2782
|
|
Champaign, IL 61825
|
|
|
|
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
|
|
Director:
|
|
hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
|
|
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext91
|
|
or cd etext92
|
|
or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
GET 0INDEX.GUT
|
|
for a list of books
|
|
and
|
|
GET NEW GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
|
|
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
|
|
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
|
|
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
|
|
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
|
|
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
|
|
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
|
|
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
|
|
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
|
|
distribute it in the United States without permission and
|
|
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
|
|
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
|
|
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
|
|
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
|
|
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
|
|
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
|
|
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
|
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
|
|
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
|
|
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
|
|
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
|
|
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
|
|
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
|
|
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
|
|
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
|
|
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
|
|
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
|
|
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
|
|
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
|
|
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
|
|
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive it electronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
|
|
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
|
|
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
|
|
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
|
|
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
|
|
or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
|
|
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
|
|
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
|
|
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
|
|
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
|
|
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
|
|
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
|
|
*EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
|
|
does *not* contain characters other than those
|
|
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
|
|
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
|
|
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
|
|
author, and additional characters may be used to
|
|
indicate hypertext links; OR
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
|
|
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
|
|
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
|
|
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
|
|
OR
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
|
|
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
|
|
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
|
|
or other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
|
|
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
|
|
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
|
|
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
|
|
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
|
|
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
|
|
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE LOST WORLD
|
|
|
|
I have wrought my simple plan
|
|
If I give one hour of joy
|
|
To the boy who's half a man,
|
|
Or the man who's half a boy.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Lost World
|
|
|
|
By SIR ARTHUR CONAN DOYLE
|
|
|
|
COPYRIGHT, 1912
|
|
|
|
Foreword
|
|
|
|
Mr. E. D. Malone desires to state that
|
|
both the injunction for restraint and the
|
|
libel action have been withdrawn unreservedly
|
|
by Professor G. E. Challenger, who, being
|
|
satisfied that no criticism or comment in
|
|
this book is meant in an offensive spirit,
|
|
has guaranteed that he will place no
|
|
impediment to its publication and circulation.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Contents
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER
|
|
I. "THERE ARE HEROISMS ALL ROUND US"
|
|
II. "TRY YOUR LUCK WITH PROFESSOR CHALLENGER"
|
|
III. "HE IS A PERFECTLY IMPOSSIBLE PERSON"
|
|
IV. "IT'S JUST THE VERY BIGGEST THING IN THE WORLD"
|
|
V. "QUESTION!"
|
|
VI. "I WAS THE FLAIL OF THE LORD"
|
|
VII. "TO-MORROW WE DISAPPEAR INTO THE UNKNOWN"
|
|
VIII. "THE OUTLYING PICKETS OF THE NEW WORLD"
|
|
IX. "WHO COULD HAVE FORESEEN IT?
|
|
X. "THE MOST WONDERFUL THINGS HAVE HAPPENED"
|
|
XI. "FOR ONCE I WAS THE HERO"
|
|
XII. "IT WAS DREADFUL IN THE FOREST"
|
|
XIII. "A SIGHT I SHALL NEVER FORGET"
|
|
XIV. "THOSE WERE THE REAL CONQUESTS"
|
|
XV. "OUR EYES HAVE SEEN GREAT WONDERS"
|
|
XVI. "A PROCESSION! A PROCESSION!"
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE LOST WORLD
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Lost World
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I
|
|
|
|
"There Are Heroisms All Round Us"
|
|
|
|
Mr. Hungerton, her father, really was the most tactless person
|
|
upon earth,--a fluffy, feathery, untidy cockatoo of a man,
|
|
perfectly good-natured, but absolutely centered upon his own
|
|
silly self. If anything could have driven me from Gladys,
|
|
it would have been the thought of such a father-in-law. I am
|
|
convinced that he really believed in his heart that I came round
|
|
to the Chestnuts three days a week for the pleasure of his company,
|
|
and very especially to hear his views upon bimetallism, a subject
|
|
upon which he was by way of being an authority.
|
|
|
|
For an hour or more that evening I listened to his monotonous
|
|
chirrup about bad money driving out good, the token value of silver,
|
|
the depreciation of the rupee, and the true standards of exchange.
|
|
|
|
"Suppose," he cried with feeble violence, "that all the debts
|
|
in the world were called up simultaneously, and immediate payment
|
|
insisted upon,--what under our present conditions would happen then?"
|
|
|
|
I gave the self-evident answer that I should be a ruined man,
|
|
upon which he jumped from his chair, reproved me for my habitual
|
|
levity, which made it impossible for him to discuss any reasonable
|
|
subject in my presence, and bounced off out of the room to dress
|
|
for a Masonic meeting.
|
|
|
|
At last I was alone with Gladys, and the moment of Fate had come!
|
|
All that evening I had felt like the soldier who awaits the signal
|
|
which will send him on a forlorn hope; hope of victory and fear of
|
|
repulse alternating in his mind.
|
|
|
|
She sat with that proud, delicate profile of hers outlined against
|
|
the red curtain. How beautiful she was! And yet how aloof!
|
|
We had been friends, quite good friends; but never could I get
|
|
beyond the same comradeship which I might have established with
|
|
one of my fellow-reporters upon the Gazette,--perfectly frank,
|
|
perfectly kindly, and perfectly unsexual. My instincts are
|
|
all against a woman being too frank and at her ease with me.
|
|
It is no compliment to a man. Where the real sex feeling begins,
|
|
timidity and distrust are its companions, heritage from old wicked
|
|
days when love and violence went often hand in hand. The bent head,
|
|
the averted eye, the faltering voice, the wincing figure--these,
|
|
and not the unshrinking gaze and frank reply, are the true signals
|
|
of passion. Even in my short life I had learned as much as that--
|
|
or had inherited it in that race memory which we call instinct.
|
|
|
|
Gladys was full of every womanly quality. Some judged her to be cold
|
|
and hard; but such a thought was treason. That delicately bronzed skin,
|
|
almost oriental in its coloring, that raven hair, the large liquid eyes,
|
|
the full but exquisite lips,--all the stigmata of passion were there.
|
|
But I was sadly conscious that up to now I had never found the secret
|
|
of drawing it forth. However, come what might, I should have done
|
|
with suspense and bring matters to a head to-night. She could
|
|
but refuse me, and better be a repulsed lover than an accepted brother.
|
|
|
|
So far my thoughts had carried me, and I was about to break
|
|
the long and uneasy silence, when two critical, dark eyes looked
|
|
round at me, and the proud head was shaken in smiling reproof.
|
|
"I have a presentiment that you are going to propose, Ned. I do
|
|
wish you wouldn't; for things are so much nicer as they are."
|
|
|
|
I drew my chair a little nearer. "Now, how did you know that I
|
|
was going to propose?" I asked in genuine wonder.
|
|
|
|
"Don't women always know? Do you suppose any woman in the world
|
|
was ever taken unawares? But--oh, Ned, our friendship has been
|
|
so good and so pleasant! What a pity to spoil it! Don't you
|
|
feel how splendid it is that a young man and a young woman should
|
|
be able to talk face to face as we have talked?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know, Gladys. You see, I can talk face to face with--
|
|
with the station-master." I can't imagine how that official came
|
|
into the matter; but in he trotted, and set us both laughing.
|
|
"That does not satisfy me in the least. I want my arms round you,
|
|
and your head on my breast, and--oh, Gladys, I want----"
|
|
|
|
She had sprung from her chair, as she saw signs that I proposed
|
|
to demonstrate some of my wants. "You've spoiled everything, Ned,"
|
|
she said. "It's all so beautiful and natural until this kind
|
|
of thing comes in! It is such a pity! Why can't you control yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"I didn't invent it," I pleaded. "It's nature. It's love."
|
|
|
|
"Well, perhaps if both love, it may be different. I have never
|
|
felt it."
|
|
|
|
"But you must--you, with your beauty, with your soul! Oh, Gladys,
|
|
you were made for love! You must love!"
|
|
|
|
"One must wait till it comes."
|
|
|
|
"But why can't you love me, Gladys? Is it my appearance, or what?"
|
|
|
|
She did unbend a little. She put forward a hand--such a gracious,
|
|
stooping attitude it was--and she pressed back my head. Then she
|
|
looked into my upturned face with a very wistful smile.
|
|
|
|
"No it isn't that," she said at last. "You're not a conceited
|
|
boy by nature, and so I can safely tell you it is not that.
|
|
It's deeper."
|
|
|
|
"My character?"
|
|
|
|
She nodded severely.
|
|
|
|
"What can I do to mend it? Do sit down and talk it over.
|
|
No, really, I won't if you'll only sit down!"
|
|
|
|
She looked at me with a wondering distrust which was much more to my
|
|
mind than her whole-hearted confidence. How primitive and bestial
|
|
it looks when you put it down in black and white!--and perhaps after
|
|
all it is only a feeling peculiar to myself. Anyhow, she sat down.
|
|
|
|
"Now tell me what's amiss with me?"
|
|
|
|
"I'm in love with somebody else," said she.
|
|
|
|
It was my turn to jump out of my chair.
|
|
|
|
"It's nobody in particular," she explained, laughing at the expression
|
|
of my face: "only an ideal. I've never met the kind of man I mean."
|
|
|
|
"Tell me about him. What does he look like?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, he might look very much like you."
|
|
|
|
"How dear of you to say that! Well, what is it that he
|
|
does that I don't do? Just say the word,--teetotal,
|
|
vegetarian, aeronaut, theosophist, superman. I'll have
|
|
a try at it, Gladys, if you will only give me an idea what would please you."
|
|
|
|
She laughed at the elasticity of my character. "Well, in the first
|
|
place, I don't think my ideal would speak like that," said she.
|
|
"He would be a harder, sterner man, not so ready to adapt himself
|
|
to a silly girl's whim. But, above all, he must be a man who could do,
|
|
who could act, who could look Death in the face and have no fear
|
|
of him, a man of great deeds and strange experiences. It is never
|
|
a man that I should love, but always the glories he had won;
|
|
for they would be reflected upon me. Think of Richard Burton!
|
|
When I read his wife's life of him I could so understand her love!
|
|
And Lady Stanley! Did you ever read the wonderful last chapter of
|
|
that book about her husband? These are the sort of men that a woman
|
|
could worship with all her soul, and yet be the greater, not the less,
|
|
on account of her love, honored by all the world as the inspirer
|
|
of noble deeds."
|
|
|
|
She looked so beautiful in her enthusiasm that I nearly brought
|
|
down the whole level of the interview. I gripped myself hard,
|
|
and went on with the argument.
|
|
|
|
"We can't all be Stanleys and Burtons," said I; "besides, we don't
|
|
get the chance,--at least, I never had the chance. If I did,
|
|
I should try to take it."
|
|
|
|
"But chances are all around you. It is the mark of the kind of man
|
|
I mean that he makes his own chances. You can't hold him back.
|
|
I've never met him, and yet I seem to know him so well. There are
|
|
heroisms all round us waiting to be done. It's for men to do them,
|
|
and for women to reserve their love as a reward for such men.
|
|
Look at that young Frenchman who went up last week in a balloon.
|
|
It was blowing a gale of wind; but because he was announced to go
|
|
he insisted on starting. The wind blew him fifteen hundred miles
|
|
in twenty-four hours, and he fell in the middle of Russia.
|
|
That was the kind of man I mean. Think of the woman he loved, and how
|
|
other women must have envied her! That's what I should like to be,--
|
|
envied for my man."
|
|
|
|
"I'd have done it to please you."
|
|
|
|
"But you shouldn't do it merely to please me. You should do it
|
|
because you can't help yourself, because it's natural to you,
|
|
because the man in you is crying out for heroic expression.
|
|
Now, when you described the Wigan coal explosion last month,
|
|
could you not have gone down and helped those people, in spite
|
|
of the choke-damp?"
|
|
|
|
"I did."
|
|
|
|
"You never said so."
|
|
|
|
"There was nothing worth bucking about."
|
|
|
|
"I didn't know." She looked at me with rather more interest.
|
|
"That was brave of you."
|
|
|
|
"I had to. If you want to write good copy, you must be where
|
|
the things are."
|
|
|
|
"What a prosaic motive! It seems to take all the romance out of it.
|
|
But, still, whatever your motive, I am glad that you went down that mine."
|
|
She gave me her hand; but with such sweetness and dignity that I
|
|
could only stoop and kiss it. "I dare say I am merely a foolish
|
|
woman with a young girl's fancies. And yet it is so real with me,
|
|
so entirely part of my very self, that I cannot help acting upon it.
|
|
If I marry, I do want to marry a famous man!"
|
|
|
|
"Why should you not?" I cried. "It is women like you who brace men up.
|
|
Give me a chance, and see if I will take it! Besides, as you say,
|
|
men ought to MAKE their own chances, and not wait until they are given.
|
|
Look at Clive--just a clerk, and he conquered India! By George!
|
|
I'll do something in the world yet!"
|
|
|
|
She laughed at my sudden Irish effervescence. "Why not?" she said.
|
|
"You have everything a man could have,--youth, health, strength,
|
|
education, energy. I was sorry you spoke. And now I am glad--
|
|
so glad--if it wakens these thoughts in you!"
|
|
|
|
"And if I do----"
|
|
|
|
Her dear hand rested like warm velvet upon my lips. "Not another
|
|
word, Sir! You should have been at the office for evening
|
|
duty half an hour ago; only I hadn't the heart to remind you.
|
|
Some day, perhaps, when you have won your place in the world,
|
|
we shall talk it over again."
|
|
|
|
And so it was that I found myself that foggy November evening
|
|
pursuing the Camberwell tram with my heart glowing within me,
|
|
and with the eager determination that not another day should elapse
|
|
before I should find some deed which was worthy of my lady. But who--
|
|
who in all this wide world could ever have imagined the incredible
|
|
shape which that deed was to take, or the strange steps by which I
|
|
was led to the doing of it?
|
|
|
|
And, after all, this opening chapter will seem to the reader to have
|
|
nothing to do with my narrative; and yet there would have been
|
|
no narrative without it, for it is only when a man goes out into
|
|
the world with the thought that there are heroisms all round him,
|
|
and with the desire all alive in his heart to follow any which may
|
|
come within sight of him, that he breaks away as I did from the life
|
|
he knows, and ventures forth into the wonderful mystic twilight land
|
|
where lie the great adventures and the great rewards. Behold me, then,
|
|
at the office of the Daily Gazette, on the staff of which I was a most
|
|
insignificant unit, with the settled determination that very night,
|
|
if possible, to find the quest which should be worthy of my Gladys!
|
|
Was it hardness, was it selfishness, that she should ask me to risk my
|
|
life for her own glorification? Such thoughts may come to middle age;
|
|
but never to ardent three-and-twenty in the fever of his first love.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II
|
|
|
|
"Try Your Luck with Professor Challenger"
|
|
|
|
I always liked McArdle, the crabbed, old, round-backed, red-headed
|
|
news editor, and I rather hoped that he liked me. Of course,
|
|
Beaumont was the real boss; but he lived in the rarefied atmosphere
|
|
of some Olympian height from which he could distinguish nothing
|
|
smaller than an international crisis or a split in the Cabinet.
|
|
Sometimes we saw him passing in lonely majesty to his inner sanctum,
|
|
with his eyes staring vaguely and his mind hovering over the Balkans
|
|
or the Persian Gulf. He was above and beyond us. But McArdle was
|
|
his first lieutenant, and it was he that we knew. The old man nodded
|
|
as I entered the room, and he pushed his spectacles far up on his
|
|
bald forehead.
|
|
|
|
"Well, Mr. Malone, from all I hear, you seem to be doing very well,"
|
|
said he in his kindly Scotch accent.
|
|
|
|
I thanked him.
|
|
|
|
"The colliery explosion was excellent. So was the Southwark fire.
|
|
You have the true descreeptive touch. What did you want to see
|
|
me about?"
|
|
|
|
"To ask a favor."
|
|
|
|
He looked alarmed, and his eyes shunned mine. "Tut, tut!
|
|
What is it?"
|
|
|
|
"Do you think, Sir, that you could possibly send me on some mission
|
|
for the paper? I would do my best to put it through and get you
|
|
some good copy."
|
|
|
|
"What sort of meesion had you in your mind, Mr. Malone?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, Sir, anything that had adventure and danger in it.
|
|
I really would do my very best. The more difficult it was,
|
|
the better it would suit me."
|
|
|
|
"You seem very anxious to lose your life."
|
|
|
|
"To justify my life, Sir."
|
|
|
|
"Dear me, Mr. Malone, this is very--very exalted. I'm afraid
|
|
the day for this sort of thing is rather past. The expense of the
|
|
`special meesion' business hardly justifies the result, and, of course,
|
|
in any case it would only be an experienced man with a name that
|
|
would command public confidence who would get such an order.
|
|
The big blank spaces in the map are all being filled in, and there's
|
|
no room for romance anywhere. Wait a bit, though!" he added, with a
|
|
sudden smile upon his face. "Talking of the blank spaces of the map
|
|
gives me an idea. What about exposing a fraud--a modern Munchausen--
|
|
and making him rideeculous? You could show him up as the liar
|
|
that he is! Eh, man, it would be fine. How does it appeal to you?"
|
|
|
|
"Anything--anywhere--I care nothing."
|
|
|
|
McArdle was plunged in thought for some minutes.
|
|
|
|
"I wonder whether you could get on friendly--or at least on talking
|
|
terms with the fellow," he said, at last. "You seem to have a sort
|
|
of genius for establishing relations with people--seempathy, I suppose,
|
|
or animal magnetism, or youthful vitality, or something.
|
|
I am conscious of it myself."
|
|
|
|
"You are very good, sir."
|
|
|
|
"So why should you not try your luck with Professor Challenger,
|
|
of Enmore Park?"
|
|
|
|
I dare say I looked a little startled.
|
|
|
|
"Challenger!" I cried. "Professor Challenger, the famous zoologist!
|
|
Wasn't he the man who broke the skull of Blundell, of the Telegraph?"
|
|
|
|
The news editor smiled grimly.
|
|
|
|
"Do you mind? Didn't you say it was adventures you were after?"
|
|
|
|
"It is all in the way of business, sir," I answered.
|
|
|
|
"Exactly. I don't suppose he can always be so violent as that.
|
|
I'm thinking that Blundell got him at the wrong moment, maybe,
|
|
or in the wrong fashion. You may have better luck, or more tact
|
|
in handling him. There's something in your line there, I am sure,
|
|
and the Gazette should work it."
|
|
|
|
"I really know nothing about him," said I. I only remember his name
|
|
in connection with the police-court proceedings, for striking Blundell."
|
|
|
|
"I have a few notes for your guidance, Mr. Malone. I've had my eye on
|
|
the Professor for some little time." He took a paper from a drawer.
|
|
"Here is a summary of his record. I give it you briefly:--
|
|
|
|
"`Challenger, George Edward. Born: Largs, N. B., 1863.
|
|
Educ.: Largs Academy; Edinburgh University. British Museum
|
|
Assistant, 1892. Assistant-Keeper of Comparative Anthropology
|
|
Department, 1893. Resigned after acrimonious correspondence
|
|
same year. Winner of Crayston Medal for Zoological Research.
|
|
Foreign Member of'--well, quite a lot of things, about two inches
|
|
of small type--`Societe Belge, American Academy of Sciences, La Plata,
|
|
etc., etc. Ex-President Palaeontological Society. Section H,
|
|
British Association'--so on, so on!--`Publications: "Some Observations
|
|
Upon a Series of Kalmuck Skulls"; "Outlines of Vertebrate Evolution";
|
|
and numerous papers, including "The underlying fallacy of Weissmannism,"
|
|
which caused heated discussion at the Zoological Congress of Vienna.
|
|
Recreations: Walking, Alpine climbing. Address: Enmore Park, Kensington, W.'
|
|
|
|
"There, take it with you. I've nothing more for you to-night."
|
|
|
|
I pocketed the slip of paper.
|
|
|
|
"One moment, sir," I said, as I realized that it was a pink bald head,
|
|
and not a red face, which was fronting me. "I am not very clear
|
|
yet why I am to interview this gentleman. What has he done?"
|
|
|
|
The face flashed back again.
|
|
|
|
"Went to South America on a solitary expedeetion two years ago.
|
|
Came back last year. Had undoubtedly been to South America,
|
|
but refused to say exactly where. Began to tell his adventures
|
|
in a vague way, but somebody started to pick holes, and he just shut
|
|
up like an oyster. Something wonderful happened--or the man's
|
|
a champion liar, which is the more probable supposeetion. Had some
|
|
damaged photographs, said to be fakes. Got so touchy that he assaults
|
|
anyone who asks questions, and heaves reporters doun the stairs.
|
|
In my opinion he's just a homicidal megalomaniac with a turn
|
|
for science. That's your man, Mr. Malone. Now, off you run,
|
|
and see what you can make of him. You're big enough to look
|
|
after yourself. Anyway, you are all safe. Employers' Liability Act,
|
|
you know."
|
|
|
|
A grinning red face turned once more into a pink oval, fringed with
|
|
gingery fluff; the interview was at an end.
|
|
|
|
I walked across to the Savage Club, but instead of turning into it I
|
|
leaned upon the railings of Adelphi Terrace and gazed thoughtfully
|
|
for a long time at the brown, oily river. I can always think
|
|
most sanely and clearly in the open air. I took out the list
|
|
of Professor Challenger's exploits, and I read it over under the
|
|
electric lamp. Then I had what I can only regard as an inspiration.
|
|
As a Pressman, I felt sure from what I had been told that I could
|
|
never hope to get into touch with this cantankerous Professor.
|
|
But these recriminations, twice mentioned in his skeleton biography,
|
|
could only mean that he was a fanatic in science. Was there
|
|
not an exposed margin there upon which he might be accessible?
|
|
I would try.
|
|
|
|
I entered the club. It was just after eleven, and the big room
|
|
was fairly full, though the rush had not yet set in. I noticed
|
|
a tall, thin, angular man seated in an arm-chair by the fire.
|
|
He turned as I drew my chair up to him. It was the man of all others
|
|
whom I should have chosen--Tarp Henry, of the staff of Nature,
|
|
a thin, dry, leathery creature, who was full, to those who knew him,
|
|
of kindly humanity. I plunged instantly into my subject.
|
|
|
|
"What do you know of Professor Challenger?"
|
|
|
|
"Challenger?" He gathered his brows in scientific disapproval.
|
|
"Challenger was the man who came with some cock-and-bull story from
|
|
South America."
|
|
|
|
"What story?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, it was rank nonsense about some queer animals he had discovered.
|
|
I believe he has retracted since. Anyhow, he has suppressed it all.
|
|
He gave an interview to Reuter's, and there was such a howl
|
|
that he saw it wouldn't do. It was a discreditable business.
|
|
There were one or two folk who were inclined to take him seriously,
|
|
but he soon choked them off."
|
|
|
|
"How?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, by his insufferable rudeness and impossible behavior.
|
|
There was poor old Wadley, of the Zoological Institute. Wadley sent
|
|
a message: `The President of the Zoological Institute presents his
|
|
compliments to Professor Challenger, and would take it as a personal
|
|
favor if he would do them the honor to come to their next meeting.'
|
|
The answer was unprintable."
|
|
|
|
"You don't say?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, a bowdlerized version of it would run: `Professor Challenger
|
|
presents his compliments to the President of the Zoological Institute,
|
|
and would take it as a personal favor if he would go to the devil.'"
|
|
|
|
"Good Lord!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I expect that's what old Wadley said. I remember his
|
|
wail at the meeting, which began: `In fifty years experience
|
|
of scientific intercourse----' It quite broke the old man up."
|
|
|
|
"Anything more about Challenger?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, I'm a bacteriologist, you know. I live in a nine-hundred-diameter
|
|
microscope. I can hardly claim to take serious notice of anything that I
|
|
can see with my naked eye. I'm a frontiersman from the extreme edge
|
|
of the Knowable, and I feel quite out of place when I leave my study
|
|
and come into touch with all you great, rough, hulking creatures.
|
|
I'm too detached to talk scandal, and yet at scientific conversaziones
|
|
I HAVE heard something of Challenger, for he is one of those
|
|
men whom nobody can ignore. He's as clever as they make 'em--
|
|
a full-charged battery of force and vitality, but a quarrelsome,
|
|
ill-conditioned faddist, and unscrupulous at that. He had
|
|
gone the length of faking some photographs over the South American business."
|
|
|
|
"You say he is a faddist. What is his particular fad?"
|
|
|
|
"He has a thousand, but the latest is something about Weissmann
|
|
and Evolution. He had a fearful row about it in Vienna, I believe."
|
|
|
|
"Can't you tell me the point?"
|
|
|
|
"Not at the moment, but a translation of the proceedings exists.
|
|
We have it filed at the office. Would you care to come?"
|
|
|
|
"It's just what I want. I have to interview the fellow, and I need
|
|
some lead up to him. It's really awfully good of you to give me
|
|
a lift. I'll go with you now, if it is not too late."
|
|
|
|
|
|
Half an hour later I was seated in the newspaper office with a huge
|
|
tome in front of me, which had been opened at the article "Weissmann
|
|
versus Darwin," with the sub heading, "Spirited Protest at Vienna.
|
|
Lively Proceedings." My scientific education having been
|
|
somewhat neglected, I was unable to follow the whole argument,
|
|
but it was evident that the English Professor had handled his
|
|
subject in a very aggressive fashion, and had thoroughly annoyed
|
|
his Continental colleagues. "Protests," "Uproar," and "General
|
|
appeal to the Chairman" were three of the first brackets which
|
|
caught my eye. Most of the matter might have been written
|
|
in Chinese for any definite meaning that it conveyed to my brain.
|
|
|
|
"I wish you could translate it into English for me," I said,
|
|
pathetically, to my help-mate.
|
|
|
|
"Well, it is a translation."
|
|
|
|
"Then I'd better try my luck with the original."
|
|
|
|
"It is certainly rather deep for a layman."
|
|
|
|
"If I could only get a single good, meaty sentence which seemed to convey
|
|
some sort of definite human idea, it would serve my turn. Ah, yes,
|
|
this one will do. I seem in a vague way almost to understand it.
|
|
I'll copy it out. This shall be my link with the terrible Professor."
|
|
|
|
"Nothing else I can do?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, yes; I propose to write to him. If I could frame
|
|
the letter here, and use your address it would give atmosphere."
|
|
|
|
"We'll have the fellow round here making a row and breaking
|
|
the furniture."
|
|
|
|
"No, no; you'll see the letter--nothing contentious, I assure you."
|
|
|
|
"Well, that's my chair and desk. You'll find paper there.
|
|
I'd like to censor it before it goes."
|
|
|
|
It took some doing, but I flatter myself that it wasn't such
|
|
a bad job when it was finished. I read it aloud to the critical
|
|
bacteriologist with some pride in my handiwork.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"DEAR PROFESSOR CHALLENGER," it said, "As a humble student of Nature,
|
|
I have always taken the most profound interest in your speculations
|
|
as to the differences between Darwin and Weissmann. I have recently
|
|
had occasion to refresh my memory by re-reading----"
|
|
|
|
|
|
"You infernal liar!" murmured Tarp Henry.
|
|
|
|
|
|
--"by re-reading your masterly address at Vienna. That lucid
|
|
and admirable statement seems to be the last word in the matter.
|
|
There is one sentence in it, however--namely: `I protest strongly
|
|
against the insufferable and entirely dogmatic assertion that each
|
|
separate id is a microcosm possessed of an historical architecture
|
|
elaborated slowly through the series of generations.' Have you
|
|
no desire, in view of later research, to modify this statement?
|
|
Do you not think that it is over-accentuated? With your permission,
|
|
I would ask the favor of an interview, as I feel strongly upon
|
|
the subject, and have certain suggestions which I could only elaborate
|
|
in a personal conversation. With your consent, I trust to have
|
|
the honor of calling at eleven o'clock the day after to-morrow
|
|
(Wednesday) morning.
|
|
|
|
"I remain, Sir, with assurances of profound respect, yours very truly,
|
|
EDWARD D. MALONE."
|
|
|
|
|
|
"How's that?" I asked, triumphantly.
|
|
|
|
"Well if your conscience can stand it----"
|
|
|
|
"It has never failed me yet."
|
|
|
|
"But what do you mean to do?"
|
|
|
|
"To get there. Once I am in his room I may see some opening.
|
|
I may even go the length of open confession. If he is a sportsman he
|
|
will be tickled."
|
|
|
|
"Tickled, indeed! He's much more likely to do the tickling.
|
|
Chain mail, or an American football suit--that's what you'll want.
|
|
Well, good-bye. I'll have the answer for you here on Wednesday morning--
|
|
if he ever deigns to answer you. He is a violent, dangerous,
|
|
cantankerous character, hated by everyone who comes across him,
|
|
and the butt of the students, so far as they dare take a liberty
|
|
with him. Perhaps it would be best for you if you never heard
|
|
from the fellow at all."
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III
|
|
|
|
"He is a Perfectly Impossible Person"
|
|
|
|
My friend's fear or hope was not destined to be realized.
|
|
When I called on Wednesday there was a letter with the West
|
|
Kensington postmark upon it, and my name scrawled across the envelope
|
|
in a handwriting which looked like a barbed-wire railing.
|
|
The contents were as follows:--
|
|
|
|
|
|
"ENMORE PARK, W.
|
|
|
|
"SIR,--I have duly received your note, in which you claim to endorse
|
|
my views, although I am not aware that they are dependent upon
|
|
endorsement either from you or anyone else. You have ventured
|
|
to use the word `speculation' with regard to my statement upon
|
|
the subject of Darwinism, and I would call your attention to the fact
|
|
that such a word in such a connection is offensive to a degree.
|
|
The context convinces me, however, that you have sinned rather
|
|
through ignorance and tactlessness than through malice, so I am
|
|
content to pass the matter by. You quote an isolated sentence from
|
|
my lecture, and appear to have some difficulty in understanding it.
|
|
I should have thought that only a sub-human intelligence could have
|
|
failed to grasp the point, but if it really needs amplification
|
|
I shall consent to see you at the hour named, though visits
|
|
and visitors of every sort are exceeding distasteful to me.
|
|
As to your suggestion that I may modify my opinion, I would have you
|
|
know that it is not my habit to do so after a deliberate expression
|
|
of my mature views. You will kindly show the envelope of this letter
|
|
to my man, Austin, when you call, as he has to take every precaution
|
|
to shield me from the intrusive rascals who call themselves `journalists.'
|
|
"Yours faithfully,
|
|
"GEORGE EDWARD CHALLENGER."
|
|
|
|
|
|
This was the letter that I read aloud to Tarp Henry, who had come
|
|
down early to hear the result of my venture. His only remark was,
|
|
"There's some new stuff, cuticura or something, which is better
|
|
than arnica." Some people have such extraordinary notions of humor.
|
|
|
|
It was nearly half-past ten before I had received my message,
|
|
but a taxicab took me round in good time for my appointment.
|
|
It was an imposing porticoed house at which we stopped, and the
|
|
heavily-curtained windows gave every indication of wealth upon the part
|
|
of this formidable Professor. The door was opened by an odd, swarthy,
|
|
dried-up person of uncertain age, with a dark pilot jacket and brown
|
|
leather gaiters. I found afterwards that he was the chauffeur,
|
|
who filled the gaps left by a succession of fugitive butlers.
|
|
He looked me up and down with a searching light blue eye.
|
|
|
|
"Expected?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"An appointment."
|
|
|
|
"Got your letter?"
|
|
|
|
I produced the envelope.
|
|
|
|
"Right!" He seemed to be a person of few words. Following him
|
|
down the passage I was suddenly interrupted by a small woman,
|
|
who stepped out from what proved to be the dining-room door.
|
|
She was a bright, vivacious, dark-eyed lady, more French than English
|
|
in her type.
|
|
|
|
"One moment," she said. "You can wait, Austin. Step in here, sir.
|
|
May I ask if you have met my husband before?"
|
|
|
|
"No, madam, I have not had the honor."
|
|
|
|
"Then I apologize to you in advance. I must tell you that he
|
|
is a perfectly impossible person--absolutely impossible. If you
|
|
are forewarned you will be the more ready to make allowances."
|
|
|
|
"It is most considerate of you, madam."
|
|
|
|
"Get quickly out of the room if he seems inclined to be violent.
|
|
Don't wait to argue with him. Several people have been injured
|
|
through doing that. Afterwards there is a public scandal and it
|
|
reflects upon me and all of us. I suppose it wasn't about South
|
|
America you wanted to see him?"
|
|
|
|
I could not lie to a lady.
|
|
|
|
"Dear me! That is his most dangerous subject. You won't believe
|
|
a word he says--I'm sure I don't wonder. But don't tell him so,
|
|
for it makes him very violent. Pretend to believe him, and you
|
|
may get through all right. Remember he believes it himself.
|
|
Of that you may be assured. A more honest man never lived.
|
|
Don't wait any longer or he may suspect. If you find him dangerous--
|
|
really dangerous--ring the bell and hold him off until I come.
|
|
Even at his worst I can usually control him."
|
|
|
|
With these encouraging words the lady handed me over to the taciturn
|
|
Austin, who had waited like a bronze statue of discretion during
|
|
our short interview, and I was conducted to the end of the passage.
|
|
There was a tap at a door, a bull's bellow from within, and I
|
|
was face to face with the Professor.
|
|
|
|
He sat in a rotating chair behind a broad table, which was covered with
|
|
books, maps, and diagrams. As I entered, his seat spun round to face me.
|
|
His appearance made me gasp. I was prepared for something strange,
|
|
but not for so overpowering a personality as this. It was his size
|
|
which took one's breath away--his size and his imposing presence.
|
|
His head was enormous, the largest I have ever seen upon a human being.
|
|
I am sure that his top-hat, had I ever ventured to don it,
|
|
would have slipped over me entirely and rested on my shoulders.
|
|
He had the face and beard which I associate with an Assyrian bull;
|
|
the former florid, the latter so black as almost to have a suspicion
|
|
of blue, spade-shaped and rippling down over his chest. The hair
|
|
was peculiar, plastered down in front in a long, curving wisp over his
|
|
massive forehead. The eyes were blue-gray under great black tufts,
|
|
very clear, very critical, and very masterful. A huge spread
|
|
of shoulders and a chest like a barrel were the other parts of him
|
|
which appeared above the table, save for two enormous hands covered
|
|
with long black hair. This and a bellowing, roaring, rumbling voice
|
|
made up my first impression of the notorious Professor Challenger.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" said he, with a most insolent stare. "What now?"
|
|
|
|
I must keep up my deception for at least a little time longer,
|
|
otherwise here was evidently an end of the interview.
|
|
|
|
"You were good enough to give me an appointment, sir," said I,
|
|
humbly, producing his envelope.
|
|
|
|
He took my letter from his desk and laid it out before him.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, you are the young person who cannot understand plain English,
|
|
are you? My general conclusions you are good enough to approve,
|
|
as I understand?"
|
|
|
|
"Entirely, sir--entirely!" I was very emphatic.
|
|
|
|
"Dear me! That strengthens my position very much, does it not?
|
|
Your age and appearance make your support doubly valuable.
|
|
Well, at least you are better than that herd of swine in Vienna,
|
|
whose gregarious grunt is, however, not more offensive than the
|
|
isolated effort of the British hog." He glared at me as the present
|
|
representative of the beast.
|
|
|
|
"They seem to have behaved abominably," said I.
|
|
|
|
"I assure you that I can fight my own battles, and that I have no
|
|
possible need of your sympathy. Put me alone, sir, and with my
|
|
back to the wall. G. E. C. is happiest then. Well, sir, let us
|
|
do what we can to curtail this visit, which can hardly be agreeable
|
|
to you, and is inexpressibly irksome to me. You had, as I have
|
|
been led to believe, some comments to make upon the proposition
|
|
which I advanced in my thesis."
|
|
|
|
There was a brutal directness about his methods which made evasion
|
|
difficult. I must still make play and wait for a better opening.
|
|
It had seemed simple enough at a distance. Oh, my Irish wits,
|
|
could they not help me now, when I needed help so sorely?
|
|
He transfixed me with two sharp, steely eyes. "Come, come!"
|
|
he rumbled.
|
|
|
|
"I am, of course, a mere student," said I, with a fatuous smile,
|
|
"hardly more, I might say, than an earnest inquirer. At the same time,
|
|
it seemed to me that you were a little severe upon Weissmann
|
|
in this matter. Has not the general evidence since that date
|
|
tended to--well, to strengthen his position?"
|
|
|
|
"What evidence?" He spoke with a menacing calm.
|
|
|
|
"Well, of course, I am aware that there is not any what you might call
|
|
DEFINITE evidence. I alluded merely to the trend of modern thought
|
|
and the general scientific point of view, if I might so express it."
|
|
|
|
He leaned forward with great earnestness.
|
|
|
|
"I suppose you are aware," said he, checking off points upon
|
|
his fingers, "that the cranial index is a constant factor?"
|
|
|
|
"Naturally," said I.
|
|
|
|
"And that telegony is still sub judice?"
|
|
|
|
"Undoubtedly."
|
|
|
|
"And that the germ plasm is different from the parthenogenetic egg?"
|
|
|
|
"Why, surely!" I cried, and gloried in my own audacity.
|
|
|
|
"But what does that prove?" he asked, in a gentle, persuasive voice.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, what indeed?" I murmured. "What does it prove?"
|
|
|
|
"Shall I tell you?" he cooed.
|
|
|
|
"Pray do."
|
|
|
|
"It proves," he roared, with a sudden blast of fury, "that you
|
|
are the damnedest imposter in London--a vile, crawling journalist,
|
|
who has no more science than he has decency in his composition!"
|
|
|
|
He had sprung to his feet with a mad rage in his eyes. Even at
|
|
that moment of tension I found time for amazement at the discovery
|
|
that he was quite a short man, his head not higher than my shoulder--
|
|
a stunted Hercules whose tremendous vitality had all run to depth,
|
|
breadth, and brain.
|
|
|
|
"Gibberish!" he cried, leaning forward, with his fingers on
|
|
the table and his face projecting. "That's what I have been
|
|
talking to you, sir--scientific gibberish! Did you think you
|
|
could match cunning with me--you with your walnut of a brain?
|
|
You think you are omnipotent, you infernal scribblers, don't you?
|
|
That your praise can make a man and your blame can break him?
|
|
We must all bow to you, and try to get a favorable word, must we?
|
|
This man shall have a leg up, and this man shall have a dressing down!
|
|
Creeping vermin, I know you! You've got out of your station. Time was
|
|
when your ears were clipped. You've lost your sense of proportion.
|
|
Swollen gas-bags! I'll keep you in your proper place. Yes, sir, you
|
|
haven't got over G. E. C. There's one man who is still your master.
|
|
He warned you off, but if you WILL come, by the Lord you do it
|
|
at your own risk. Forfeit, my good Mr. Malone, I claim forfeit!
|
|
You have played a rather dangerous game, and it strikes me that you have
|
|
lost it."
|
|
|
|
"Look here, sir," said I, backing to the door and opening it;
|
|
"you can be as abusive as you like. But there is a limit.
|
|
You shall not assault me."
|
|
|
|
"Shall I not?" He was slowly advancing in a peculiarly menacing way,
|
|
but he stopped now and put his big hands into the side-pockets
|
|
of a rather boyish short jacket which he wore. "I have thrown
|
|
several of you out of the house. You will be the fourth or fifth.
|
|
Three pound fifteen each--that is how it averaged. Expensive, but
|
|
very necessary. Now, sir, why should you not follow your brethren?
|
|
I rather think you must." He resumed his unpleasant and stealthy
|
|
advance, pointing his toes as he walked, like a dancing master.
|
|
|
|
I could have bolted for the hall door, but it would have been
|
|
too ignominious. Besides, a little glow of righteous anger was
|
|
springing up within me. I had been hopelessly in the wrong before,
|
|
but this man's menaces were putting me in the right.
|
|
|
|
"I'll trouble you to keep your hands off, sir. I'll not stand it."
|
|
|
|
"Dear me!" His black moustache lifted and a white fang twinkled
|
|
in a sneer. "You won't stand it, eh?"
|
|
|
|
"Don't be such a fool, Professor!" I cried. "What can you hope for?
|
|
I'm fifteen stone, as hard as nails, and play center three-quarter
|
|
every Saturday for the London Irish. I'm not the man----"
|
|
|
|
It was at that moment that he rushed me. It was lucky that I
|
|
had opened the door, or we should have gone through it.
|
|
We did a Catharine-wheel together down the passage. Somehow we
|
|
gathered up a chair upon our way, and bounded on with it towards
|
|
the street. My mouth was full of his beard, our arms were locked,
|
|
our bodies intertwined, and that infernal chair radiated its legs
|
|
all round us. The watchful Austin had thrown open the hall door.
|
|
We went with a back somersault down the front steps. I have seen
|
|
the two Macs attempt something of the kind at the halls, but it
|
|
appears to take some practise to do it without hurting oneself.
|
|
The chair went to matchwood at the bottom, and we rolled apart into
|
|
the gutter. He sprang to his feet, waving his fists and wheezing
|
|
like an asthmatic.
|
|
|
|
"Had enough?" he panted.
|
|
|
|
"You infernal bully!" I cried, as I gathered myself together.
|
|
|
|
Then and there we should have tried the thing out, for he was effervescing
|
|
with fight, but fortunately I was rescued from an odious situation.
|
|
A policeman was beside us, his notebook in his hand.
|
|
|
|
"What's all this? You ought to be ashamed" said the policeman.
|
|
It was the most rational remark which I had heard in Enmore Park.
|
|
"Well," he insisted, turning to me, "what is it, then?"
|
|
|
|
"This man attacked me," said I.
|
|
|
|
"Did you attack him?" asked the policeman.
|
|
|
|
The Professor breathed hard and said nothing.
|
|
|
|
"It's not the first time, either," said the policeman, severely,
|
|
shaking his head. "You were in trouble last month for the same thing.
|
|
You've blackened this young man's eye. Do you give him in charge, sir?"
|
|
|
|
I relented.
|
|
|
|
"No," said I, "I do not."
|
|
|
|
"What's that?" said the policeman.
|
|
|
|
"I was to blame myself. I intruded upon him. He gave me fair warning."
|
|
|
|
The policeman snapped up his notebook.
|
|
|
|
"Don't let us have any more such goings-on," said he. "Now, then!
|
|
Move on, there, move on!" This to a butcher's boy, a maid, and one
|
|
or two loafers who had collected. He clumped heavily down the street,
|
|
driving this little flock before him. The Professor looked at me,
|
|
and there was something humorous at the back of his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"Come in!" said he. "I've not done with you yet."
|
|
|
|
The speech had a sinister sound, but I followed him none the less
|
|
into the house. The man-servant, Austin, like a wooden image,
|
|
closed the door behind us.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV
|
|
|
|
"It's Just the very Biggest Thing in the World"
|
|
|
|
Hardly was it shut when Mrs. Challenger darted out from the dining-room.
|
|
The small woman was in a furious temper. She barred her husband's
|
|
way like an enraged chicken in front of a bulldog. It was evident
|
|
that she had seen my exit, but had not observed my return.
|
|
|
|
"You brute, George!" she screamed. "You've hurt that nice young man."
|
|
|
|
He jerked backwards with his thumb.
|
|
|
|
"Here he is, safe and sound behind me."
|
|
|
|
She was confused, but not unduly so.
|
|
|
|
"I am so sorry, I didn't see you."
|
|
|
|
"I assure you, madam, that it is all right."
|
|
|
|
"He has marked your poor face! Oh, George, what a brute you are!
|
|
Nothing but scandals from one end of the week to the other.
|
|
Everyone hating and making fun of you. You've finished my patience.
|
|
This ends it."
|
|
|
|
"Dirty linen," he rumbled.
|
|
|
|
"It's not a secret," she cried. "Do you suppose that the whole street--
|
|
the whole of London, for that matter---- Get away, Austin, we don't
|
|
want you here. Do you suppose they don't all talk about you?
|
|
Where is your dignity? You, a man who should have been Regius Professor
|
|
at a great University with a thousand students all revering you.
|
|
Where is your dignity, George?"
|
|
|
|
"How about yours, my dear?"
|
|
|
|
"You try me too much. A ruffian--a common brawling ruffian--
|
|
that's what you have become."
|
|
|
|
"Be good, Jessie."
|
|
|
|
"A roaring, raging bully!"
|
|
|
|
"That's done it! Stool of penance!" said he.
|
|
|
|
To my amazement he stooped, picked her up, and placed her sitting
|
|
upon a high pedestal of black marble in the angle of the hall.
|
|
It was at least seven feet high, and so thin that she could hardly
|
|
balance upon it. A more absurd object than she presented cocked
|
|
up there with her face convulsed with anger, her feet dangling,
|
|
and her body rigid for fear of an upset, I could not imagine.
|
|
|
|
"Let me down!" she wailed.
|
|
|
|
"Say `please.'"
|
|
|
|
"You brute, George! Let me down this instant!"
|
|
|
|
"Come into the study, Mr. Malone."
|
|
|
|
"Really, sir----!" said I, looking at the lady.
|
|
|
|
"Here's Mr. Malone pleading for you, Jessie.
|
|
|
|
Say `please,' and down you come."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, you brute! Please! please!"
|
|
|
|
"You must behave yourself, dear. Mr. Malone is a Pressman.
|
|
He will have it all in his rag to-morrow, and sell an extra dozen
|
|
among our neighbors. `Strange story of high life'--you felt
|
|
fairly high on that pedestal, did you not? Then a sub-title,
|
|
`Glimpse of a singular menage.' He's a foul feeder, is Mr. Malone,
|
|
a carrion eater, like all of his kind--porcus ex grege diaboli--
|
|
a swine from the devil's herd. That's it, Malone--what?"
|
|
|
|
"You are really intolerable!" said I, hotly.
|
|
|
|
He bellowed with laughter.
|
|
|
|
"We shall have a coalition presently," he boomed, looking from his wife
|
|
to me and puffing out his enormous chest. Then, suddenly altering
|
|
his tone, "Excuse this frivolous family badinage, Mr. Malone.
|
|
I called you back for some more serious purpose than to mix you up
|
|
with our little domestic pleasantries. Run away, little woman,
|
|
and don't fret." He placed a huge hand upon each of her shoulders.
|
|
"All that you say is perfectly true. I should be a better man if I did
|
|
what you advise, but I shouldn't be quite George Edward Challenger.
|
|
There are plenty of better men, my dear, but only one G. E. C. So
|
|
make the best of him." He suddenly gave her a resounding kiss,
|
|
which embarrassed me even more than his violence had done.
|
|
"Now, Mr. Malone," he continued, with a great accession of dignity,
|
|
"this way, if YOU please."
|
|
|
|
We re-entered the room which we had left so tumultuously ten
|
|
minutes before. The Professor closed the door carefully behind us,
|
|
motioned me into an arm-chair, and pushed a cigar-box under my nose.
|
|
|
|
"Real San Juan Colorado," he said. "Excitable people like you are
|
|
the better for narcotics. Heavens! don't bite it! Cut--and cut
|
|
with reverence! Now lean back, and listen attentively to whatever
|
|
I may care to say to you. If any remark should occur to you,
|
|
you can reserve it for some more opportune time.
|
|
|
|
"First of all, as to your return to my house after your most
|
|
justifiable expulsion"--he protruded his beard, and stared at me
|
|
as one who challenges and invites contradiction--"after, as I say,
|
|
your well-merited expulsion. The reason lay in your answer
|
|
to that most officious policeman, in which I seemed to discern
|
|
some glimmering of good feeling upon your part--more, at any rate,
|
|
than I am accustomed to associate with your profession. In admitting
|
|
that the fault of the incident lay with you, you gave some evidence
|
|
of a certain mental detachment and breadth of view which attracted
|
|
my favorable notice. The sub-species of the human race to which you
|
|
unfortunately belong has always been below my mental horizon.
|
|
Your words brought you suddenly above it. You swam up into my
|
|
serious notice. For this reason I asked you to return with me,
|
|
as I was minded to make your further acquaintance. You will kindly
|
|
deposit your ash in the small Japanese tray on the bamboo table
|
|
which stands at your left elbow."
|
|
|
|
All this he boomed forth like a professor addressing his class.
|
|
He had swung round his revolving chair so as to face me, and he
|
|
sat all puffed out like an enormous bull-frog, his head laid back
|
|
and his eyes half-covered by supercilious lids. Now he suddenly
|
|
turned himself sideways, and all I could see of him was tangled hair
|
|
with a red, protruding ear. He was scratching about among the litter
|
|
of papers upon his desk. He faced me presently with what looked
|
|
like a very tattered sketch-book in his hand.
|
|
|
|
"I am going to talk to you about South America," said he.
|
|
"No comments if you please. First of all, I wish you to understand
|
|
that nothing I tell you now is to be repeated in any public way
|
|
unless you have my express permission. That permission will,
|
|
in all human probability, never be given. Is that clear?"
|
|
|
|
"It is very hard," said I. "Surely a judicious account----"
|
|
|
|
He replaced the notebook upon the table.
|
|
|
|
"That ends it," said he. "I wish you a very good morning."
|
|
|
|
"No, no!" I cried. "I submit to any conditions. So far as I
|
|
can see, I have no choice."
|
|
|
|
"None in the world," said he.
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, I promise."
|
|
|
|
"Word of honor?"
|
|
|
|
"Word of honor."
|
|
|
|
He looked at me with doubt in his insolent eyes.
|
|
|
|
"After all, what do I know about your honor?" said he.
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word, sir," I cried, angrily, "you take very great liberties!
|
|
I have never been so insulted in my life."
|
|
|
|
He seemed more interested than annoyed at my outbreak.
|
|
|
|
"Round-headed," he muttered. "Brachycephalic, gray-eyed,
|
|
black-haired, with suggestion of the negroid. Celtic, I presume?"
|
|
|
|
"I am an Irishman, sir."
|
|
|
|
"Irish Irish?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir."
|
|
|
|
"That, of course, explains it. Let me see; you have given me your
|
|
promise that my confidence will be respected? That confidence,
|
|
I may say, will be far from complete. But I am prepared to give you
|
|
a few indications which will be of interest. In the first place,
|
|
you are probably aware that two years ago I made a journey to
|
|
South America--one which will be classical in the scientific history
|
|
of the world? The object of my journey was to verify some conclusions
|
|
of Wallace and of Bates, which could only be done by observing
|
|
their reported facts under the same conditions in which they had
|
|
themselves noted them. If my expedition had no other results it
|
|
would still have been noteworthy, but a curious incident occurred
|
|
to me while there which opened up an entirely fresh line of inquiry.
|
|
|
|
"You are aware--or probably, in this half-educated age, you are
|
|
not aware--that the country round some parts of the Amazon is still
|
|
only partially explored, and that a great number of tributaries,
|
|
some of them entirely uncharted, run into the main river.
|
|
It was my business to visit this little-known back-country
|
|
and to examine its fauna, which furnished me with the materials
|
|
for several chapters for that great and monumental work upon
|
|
zoology which will be my life's justification. I was returning,
|
|
my work accomplished, when I had occasion to spend a night at
|
|
a small Indian village at a point where a certain tributary--
|
|
the name and position of which I withhold--opens into the main river.
|
|
The natives were Cucama Indians, an amiable but degraded race,
|
|
with mental powers hardly superior to the average Londoner.
|
|
I had effected some cures among them upon my way up the river,
|
|
and had impressed them considerably with my personality, so that I
|
|
was not surprised to find myself eagerly awaited upon my return.
|
|
I gathered from their signs that someone had urgent need of my
|
|
medical services, and I followed the chief to one of his huts.
|
|
When I entered I found that the sufferer to whose aid I had been
|
|
summoned had that instant expired. He was, to my surprise,
|
|
no Indian, but a white man; indeed, I may say a very white man,
|
|
for he was flaxen-haired and had some characteristics of an albino.
|
|
He was clad in rags, was very emaciated, and bore every trace
|
|
of prolonged hardship. So far as I could understand the account
|
|
of the natives, he was a complete stranger to them, and had come
|
|
upon their village through the woods alone and in the last stage
|
|
of exhaustion.
|
|
|
|
"The man's knapsack lay beside the couch, and I examined the contents.
|
|
His name was written upon a tab within it--Maple White, Lake Avenue,
|
|
Detroit, Michigan. It is a name to which I am prepared always
|
|
to lift my hat. It is not too much to say that it will rank level
|
|
with my own when the final credit of this business comes to be apportioned.
|
|
|
|
"From the contents of the knapsack it was evident that this man
|
|
had been an artist and poet in search of effects. There were
|
|
scraps of verse. I do not profess to be a judge of such things,
|
|
but they appeared to me to be singularly wanting in merit.
|
|
There were also some rather commonplace pictures of river scenery,
|
|
a paint-box, a box of colored chalks, some brushes, that curved
|
|
bone which lies upon my inkstand, a volume of Baxter's `Moths
|
|
and Butterflies,' a cheap revolver, and a few cartridges. Of personal
|
|
equipment he either had none or he had lost it in his journey.
|
|
Such were the total effects of this strange American Bohemian.
|
|
|
|
"I was turning away from him when I observed that something projected
|
|
from the front of his ragged jacket. It was this sketch-book,
|
|
which was as dilapidated then as you see it now. Indeed, I can
|
|
assure you that a first folio of Shakespeare could not be treated
|
|
with greater reverence than this relic has been since it came
|
|
into my possession. I hand it to you now, and I ask you to take
|
|
it page by page and to examine the contents."
|
|
|
|
He helped himself to a cigar and leaned back with a fiercely critical
|
|
pair of eyes, taking note of the effect which this document would produce.
|
|
|
|
I had opened the volume with some expectation of a revelation,
|
|
though of what nature I could not imagine. The first page
|
|
was disappointing, however, as it contained nothing but the picture
|
|
of a very fat man in a pea-jacket, with the legend, "Jimmy Colver
|
|
on the Mail-boat," written beneath it. There followed several pages
|
|
which were filled with small sketches of Indians and their ways.
|
|
Then came a picture of a cheerful and corpulent ecclesiastic in a
|
|
shovel hat, sitting opposite a very thin European, and the inscription:
|
|
"Lunch with Fra Cristofero at Rosario." Studies of women and babies
|
|
accounted for several more pages, and then there was an unbroken series
|
|
of animal drawings with such explanations as "Manatee upon Sandbank,"
|
|
"Turtles and Their Eggs," "Black Ajouti under a Miriti Palm"--
|
|
the matter disclosing some sort of pig-like animal; and finally came
|
|
a double page of studies of long-snouted and very unpleasant saurians.
|
|
I could make nothing of it, and said so to the Professor.
|
|
|
|
"Surely these are only crocodiles?"
|
|
|
|
"Alligators! Alligators! There is hardly such a thing as a true
|
|
crocodile in South America. The distinction between them----"
|
|
|
|
"I meant that I could see nothing unusual--nothing to justify
|
|
what you have said."
|
|
|
|
He smiled serenely.
|
|
|
|
"Try the next page," said he.
|
|
|
|
I was still unable to sympathize. It was a full-page sketch of a
|
|
landscape roughly tinted in color--the kind of painting which an
|
|
open-air artist takes as a guide to a future more elaborate effort.
|
|
There was a pale-green foreground of feathery vegetation,
|
|
which sloped upwards and ended in a line of cliffs dark red in color,
|
|
and curiously ribbed like some basaltic formations which I have seen.
|
|
They extended in an unbroken wall right across the background.
|
|
At one point was an isolated pyramidal rock, crowned by a great tree,
|
|
which appeared to be separated by a cleft from the main crag.
|
|
Behind it all, a blue tropical sky. A thin green line of vegetation
|
|
fringed the summit of the ruddy cliff.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"It is no doubt a curious formation," said I "but I am not geologist
|
|
enough to say that it is wonderful."
|
|
|
|
"Wonderful!" he repeated. "It is unique. It is incredible.
|
|
No one on earth has ever dreamed of such a possibility.
|
|
Now the next."
|
|
|
|
I turned it over, and gave an exclamation of surprise. There was a
|
|
full-page picture of the most extraordinary creature that I had ever seen.
|
|
It was the wild dream of an opium smoker, a vision of delirium.
|
|
The head was like that of a fowl, the body that of a bloated lizard,
|
|
the trailing tail was furnished with upward-turned spikes,
|
|
and the curved back was edged with a high serrated fringe,
|
|
which looked like a dozen cocks' wattles placed behind each other.
|
|
In front of this creature was an absurd mannikin, or dwarf,
|
|
in human form, who stood staring at it.
|
|
|
|
"Well, what do you think of that?" cried the Professor, rubbing his
|
|
hands with an air of triumph.
|
|
|
|
"It is monstrous--grotesque."
|
|
|
|
"But what made him draw such an animal?"
|
|
|
|
"Trade gin, I should think."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, that's the best explanation you can give, is it?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, sir, what is yours?"
|
|
|
|
"The obvious one that the creature exists. That is actually
|
|
sketched from the life."
|
|
|
|
I should have laughed only that I had a vision of our doing another
|
|
Catharine-wheel down the passage.
|
|
|
|
"No doubt," said I, "no doubt," as one humors an imbecile.
|
|
"I confess, however," I added, "that this tiny human figure puzzles me.
|
|
If it were an Indian we could set it down as evidence of some pigmy
|
|
race in America, but it appears to be a European in a sun-hat."
|
|
|
|
The Professor snorted like an angry buffalo. "You really touch
|
|
the limit," said he. "You enlarge my view of the possible.
|
|
Cerebral paresis! Mental inertia! Wonderful!"
|
|
|
|
He was too absurd to make me angry. Indeed, it was a waste of energy,
|
|
for if you were going to be angry with this man you would be
|
|
angry all the time. I contented myself with smiling wearily.
|
|
"It struck me that the man was small," said I.
|
|
|
|
"Look here!" he cried, leaning forward and dabbing a great hairy
|
|
sausage of a finger on to the picture. "You see that plant
|
|
behind the animal; I suppose you thought it was a dandelion
|
|
or a Brussels sprout--what? Well, it is a vegetable ivory palm,
|
|
and they run to about fifty or sixty feet. Don't you see that the man
|
|
is put in for a purpose? He couldn't really have stood in front
|
|
of that brute and lived to draw it. He sketched himself in to give
|
|
a scale of heights. He was, we will say, over five feet high.
|
|
The tree is ten times bigger, which is what one would expect."
|
|
|
|
"Good heavens!" I cried. "Then you think the beast was----
|
|
Why, Charing Cross station would hardly make a kennel for such a brute!"
|
|
|
|
"Apart from exaggeration, he is certainly a well-grown specimen,"
|
|
said the Professor, complacently.
|
|
|
|
"But," I cried, "surely the whole experience of the human race
|
|
is not to be set aside on account of a single sketch"--I had
|
|
turned over the leaves and ascertained that there was nothing
|
|
more in the book--"a single sketch by a wandering American artist
|
|
who may have done it under hashish, or in the delirium of fever,
|
|
or simply in order to gratify a freakish imagination. You can't,
|
|
as a man of science, defend such a position as that."
|
|
|
|
For answer the Professor took a book down from a shelf.
|
|
|
|
"This is an excellent monograph by my gifted friend, Ray Lankester!"
|
|
said he. "There is an illustration here which would interest you.
|
|
Ah, yes, here it is! The inscription beneath it runs:
|
|
`Probable appearance in life of the Jurassic Dinosaur Stegosaurus.
|
|
The hind leg alone is twice as tall as a full-grown man.'
|
|
Well, what do you make of that?"
|
|
|
|
He handed me the open book. I started as I looked at the picture.
|
|
In this reconstructed animal of a dead world there was certainly a
|
|
very great resemblance to the sketch of the unknown artist.
|
|
|
|
"That is certainly remarkable," said I.
|
|
|
|
"But you won't admit that it is final?"
|
|
|
|
"Surely it might be a coincidence, or this American may have seen
|
|
a picture of the kind and carried it in his memory. It would
|
|
be likely to recur to a man in a delirium."
|
|
|
|
"Very good," said the Professor, indulgently; "we leave it at that.
|
|
I will now ask you to look at this bone." He handed over the one
|
|
which he had already described as part of the dead man's possessions.
|
|
It was about six inches long, and thicker than my thumb, with some
|
|
indications of dried cartilage at one end of it.
|
|
|
|
"To what known creature does that bone belong?" asked the Professor.
|
|
|
|
I examined it with care and tried to recall some half-forgotten knowledge.
|
|
|
|
"It might be a very thick human collar-bone," I said.
|
|
|
|
My companion waved his hand in contemptuous deprecation.
|
|
|
|
"The human collar-bone is curved. This is straight. There is a
|
|
groove upon its surface showing that a great tendon played across it,
|
|
which could not be the case with a clavicle."
|
|
|
|
"Then I must confess that I don't know what it is."
|
|
|
|
"You need not be ashamed to expose your ignorance, for I don't
|
|
suppose the whole South Kensington staff could give a name to it."
|
|
He took a little bone the size of a bean out of a pill-box. "So far
|
|
as I am a judge this human bone is the analogue of the one which
|
|
you hold in your hand. That will give you some idea of the size
|
|
of the creature. You will observe from the cartilage that this
|
|
is no fossil specimen, but recent. What do you say to that?"
|
|
|
|
"Surely in an elephant----"
|
|
|
|
He winced as if in pain.
|
|
|
|
"Don't! Don't talk of elephants in South America. Even in these
|
|
days of Board schools----"
|
|
|
|
"Well, I interrupted, "any large South American animal--a tapir,
|
|
for example."
|
|
|
|
"You may take it, young man, that I am versed in the elements of
|
|
my business. This is not a conceivable bone either of a tapir or of
|
|
any other creature known to zoology. It belongs to a very large,
|
|
a very strong, and, by all analogy, a very fierce animal which exists
|
|
upon the face of the earth, but has not yet come under the notice
|
|
of science. You are still unconvinced?"
|
|
|
|
"I am at least deeply interested."
|
|
|
|
"Then your case is not hopeless. I feel that there is reason
|
|
lurking in you somewhere, so we will patiently grope round for it.
|
|
We will now leave the dead American and proceed with my narrative.
|
|
You can imagine that I could hardly come away from the Amazon
|
|
without probing deeper into the matter. There were indications
|
|
as to the direction from which the dead traveler had come.
|
|
Indian legends would alone have been my guide, for I found that
|
|
rumors of a strange land were common among all the riverine tribes.
|
|
You have heard, no doubt, of Curupuri?"
|
|
|
|
"Never."
|
|
|
|
"Curupuri is the spirit of the woods, something terrible,
|
|
something malevolent, something to be avoided. None can describe
|
|
its shape or nature, but it is a word of terror along the Amazon.
|
|
Now all tribes agree as to the direction in which Curupuri lives.
|
|
It was the same direction from which the American had come.
|
|
Something terrible lay that way. It was my business to find out what
|
|
it was."
|
|
|
|
"What did you do?" My flippancy was all gone. This massive man
|
|
compelled one's attention and respect.
|
|
|
|
"I overcame the extreme reluctance of the natives--a reluctance which
|
|
extends even to talk upon the subject--and by judicious persuasion
|
|
and gifts, aided, I will admit, by some threats of coercion, I got
|
|
two of them to act as guides. After many adventures which I need
|
|
not describe, and after traveling a distance which I will not mention,
|
|
in a direction which I withhold, we came at last to a tract of
|
|
country which has never been described, nor, indeed, visited save
|
|
by my unfortunate predecessor. Would you kindly look at this?"
|
|
|
|
He handed me a photograph--half-plate size.
|
|
|
|
"The unsatisfactory appearance of it is due to the fact," said he,
|
|
"that on descending the river the boat was upset and the case which
|
|
contained the undeveloped films was broken, with disastrous results.
|
|
Nearly all of them were totally ruined--an irreparable loss.
|
|
This is one of the few which partially escaped. This explanation
|
|
of deficiencies or abnormalities you will kindly accept. There was
|
|
talk of faking. I am not in a mood to argue such a point."
|
|
|
|
The photograph was certainly very off-colored. An unkind critic
|
|
might easily have misinterpreted that dim surface. It was a dull
|
|
gray landscape, and as I gradually deciphered the details of it
|
|
I realized that it represented a long and enormously high line
|
|
of cliffs exactly like an immense cataract seen in the distance,
|
|
with a sloping, tree-clad plain in the foreground.
|
|
|
|
"I believe it is the same place as the painted picture," said I.
|
|
|
|
"It is the same place," the Professor answered. "I found traces
|
|
of the fellow's camp. Now look at this."
|
|
|
|
It was a nearer view of the same scene, though the photograph
|
|
was extremely defective. I could distinctly see the isolated,
|
|
tree-crowned pinnacle of rock which was detached from the crag.
|
|
|
|
"I have no doubt of it at all," said I.
|
|
|
|
"Well, that is something gained," said he. "We progress, do we not?
|
|
Now, will you please look at the top of that rocky pinnacle?
|
|
Do you observe something there?"
|
|
|
|
"An enormous tree."
|
|
|
|
"But on the tree?"
|
|
|
|
"A large bird," said I.
|
|
|
|
He handed me a lens.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," I said, peering through it, "a large bird stands on the tree.
|
|
It appears to have a considerable beak. I should say it was
|
|
a pelican."
|
|
|
|
"I cannot congratulate you upon your eyesight," said the Professor.
|
|
"It is not a pelican, nor, indeed, is it a bird. It may interest
|
|
you to know that I succeeded in shooting that particular specimen.
|
|
It was the only absolute proof of my experiences which I was able to
|
|
bring away with me."
|
|
|
|
"You have it, then?" Here at last was tangible corroboration.
|
|
|
|
"I had it. It was unfortunately lost with so much else in the same
|
|
boat accident which ruined my photographs. I clutched at it
|
|
as it disappeared in the swirl of the rapids, and part of its
|
|
wing was left in my hand. I was insensible when washed ashore,
|
|
but the miserable remnant of my superb specimen was still intact;
|
|
I now lay it before you."
|
|
|
|
From a drawer he produced what seemed to me to be the upper portion
|
|
of the wing of a large bat. It was at least two feet in length,
|
|
a curved bone, with a membranous veil beneath it.
|
|
|
|
"A monstrous bat!" I suggested.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing of the sort," said the Professor, severely. "Living, as
|
|
I do, in an educated and scientific atmosphere, I could not have
|
|
conceived that the first principles of zoology were so little known.
|
|
Is it possible that you do not know the elementary fact in
|
|
comparative anatomy, that the wing of a bird is really the forearm,
|
|
while the wing of a bat consists of three elongated fingers with
|
|
membranes between? Now, in this case, the bone is certainly not
|
|
the forearm, and you can see for yourself that this is a single
|
|
membrane hanging upon a single bone, and therefore that it cannot
|
|
belong to a bat. But if it is neither bird nor bat, what is it?"
|
|
|
|
My small stock of knowledge was exhausted.
|
|
|
|
"I really do not know," said I.
|
|
|
|
He opened the standard work to which he had already referred me.
|
|
|
|
"Here," said he, pointing to the picture of an extraordinary
|
|
flying monster, "is an excellent reproduction of the dimorphodon,
|
|
or pterodactyl, a flying reptile of the Jurassic period.
|
|
On the next page is a diagram of the mechanism of its wing.
|
|
Kindly compare it with the specimen in your hand."
|
|
|
|
A wave of amazement passed over me as I looked. I was convinced.
|
|
There could be no getting away from it. The cumulative proof
|
|
was overwhelming. The sketch, the photographs, the narrative,
|
|
and now the actual specimen--the evidence was complete. I said so--
|
|
I said so warmly, for I felt that the Professor was an ill-used man.
|
|
He leaned back in his chair with drooping eyelids and a tolerant smile,
|
|
basking in this sudden gleam of sunshine.
|
|
|
|
"It's just the very biggest thing that I ever heard of!" said I,
|
|
though it was my journalistic rather than my scientific enthusiasm that
|
|
was roused. "It is colossal. You are a Columbus of science who has
|
|
discovered a lost world. I'm awfully sorry if I seemed to doubt you.
|
|
It was all so unthinkable. But I understand evidence when I see it,
|
|
and this should be good enough for anyone."
|
|
|
|
The Professor purred with satisfaction.
|
|
|
|
"And then, sir, what did you do next?"
|
|
|
|
"It was the wet season, Mr. Malone, and my stores were exhausted.
|
|
I explored some portion of this huge cliff, but I was unable to find
|
|
any way to scale it. The pyramidal rock upon which I saw and shot
|
|
the pterodactyl was more accessible. Being something of a cragsman,
|
|
I did manage to get half way to the top of that. From that height
|
|
I had a better idea of the plateau upon the top of the crags.
|
|
It appeared to be very large; neither to east nor to west could I see
|
|
any end to the vista of green-capped cliffs. Below, it is a swampy,
|
|
jungly region, full of snakes, insects, and fever. It is a natural
|
|
protection to this singular country."
|
|
|
|
"Did you see any other trace of life?"
|
|
|
|
"No, sir, I did not; but during the week that we lay encamped at
|
|
the base of the cliff we heard some very strange noises from above."
|
|
|
|
"But the creature that the American drew? How do you account
|
|
for that?"
|
|
|
|
"We can only suppose that he must have made his way to the summit
|
|
and seen it there. We know, therefore, that there is a way up.
|
|
We know equally that it must be a very difficult one, otherwise the
|
|
creatures would have come down and overrun the surrounding country.
|
|
Surely that is clear?"
|
|
|
|
"But how did they come to be there?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not think that the problem is a very obscure one,"
|
|
said the Professor; "there can only be one explanation.
|
|
South America is, as you may have heard, a granite continent.
|
|
At this single point in the interior there has been, in some far
|
|
distant age, a great, sudden volcanic upheaval. These cliffs,
|
|
I may remark, are basaltic, and therefore plutonic. An area,
|
|
as large perhaps as Sussex, has been lifted up en bloc with all
|
|
its living contents, and cut off by perpendicular precipices of a
|
|
hardness which defies erosion from all the rest of the continent.
|
|
What is the result? Why, the ordinary laws of Nature are suspended.
|
|
The various checks which influence the struggle for existence
|
|
in the world at large are all neutralized or altered.
|
|
Creatures survive which would otherwise disappear. You will
|
|
observe that both the pterodactyl and the stegosaurus are Jurassic,
|
|
and therefore of a great age in the order of life. They have
|
|
been artificially conserved by those strange accidental conditions."
|
|
|
|
"But surely your evidence is conclusive. You have only to lay it
|
|
before the proper authorities."
|
|
|
|
"So in my simplicity, I had imagined," said the Professor, bitterly.
|
|
"I can only tell you that it was not so, that I was met at every turn
|
|
by incredulity, born partly of stupidity and partly of jealousy.
|
|
It is not my nature, sir, to cringe to any man, or to seek to prove
|
|
a fact if my word has been doubted. After the first I have not
|
|
condescended to show such corroborative proofs as I possess.
|
|
The subject became hateful to me--I would not speak of it.
|
|
When men like yourself, who represent the foolish curiosity of
|
|
the public, came to disturb my privacy I was unable to meet them
|
|
with dignified reserve. By nature I am, I admit, somewhat fiery,
|
|
and under provocation I am inclined to be violent. I fear you may
|
|
have remarked it."
|
|
|
|
I nursed my eye and was silent.
|
|
|
|
"My wife has frequently remonstrated with me upon the subject,
|
|
and yet I fancy that any man of honor would feel the same.
|
|
To-night, however, I propose to give an extreme example of
|
|
the control of the will over the emotions. I invite you to be
|
|
present at the exhibition." He handed me a card from his desk.
|
|
"You will perceive that Mr. Percival Waldron, a naturalist of
|
|
some popular repute, is announced to lecture at eight-thirty at
|
|
the Zoological Institute's Hall upon `The Record of the Ages.'
|
|
I have been specially invited to be present upon the platform,
|
|
and to move a vote of thanks to the lecturer. While doing so,
|
|
I shall make it my business, with infinite tact and delicacy, to throw
|
|
out a few remarks which may arouse the interest of the audience
|
|
and cause some of them to desire to go more deeply into the matter.
|
|
Nothing contentious, you understand, but only an indication that
|
|
there are greater deeps beyond. I shall hold myself strongly
|
|
in leash, and see whether by this self-restraint I attain a more
|
|
favorable result."
|
|
|
|
"And I may come?" I asked eagerly.
|
|
|
|
"Why, surely," he answered, cordially. He had an enormously massive
|
|
genial manner, which was almost as overpowering as his violence.
|
|
His smile of benevolence was a wonderful thing, when his cheeks
|
|
would suddenly bunch into two red apples, between his half-closed
|
|
eyes and his great black beard. "By all means, come. It will
|
|
be a comfort to me to know that I have one ally in the hall,
|
|
however inefficient and ignorant of the subject he may be. I fancy
|
|
there will be a large audience, for Waldron, though an absolute
|
|
charlatan, has a considerable popular following. Now, Mr. Malone,
|
|
I have given you rather more of my time than I had intended.
|
|
The individual must not monopolize what is meant for the world.
|
|
I shall be pleased to see you at the lecture to-night. In the meantime,
|
|
you will understand that no public use is to be made of any of the
|
|
material that I have given you."
|
|
|
|
"But Mr. McArdle--my news editor, you know--will want to know
|
|
what I have done."
|
|
|
|
"Tell him what you like. You can say, among other things,
|
|
that if he sends anyone else to intrude upon me I shall call upon him
|
|
with a riding-whip. But I leave it to you that nothing of all this
|
|
appears in print. Very good. Then the Zoological Institute's Hall
|
|
at eight-thirty to-night." I had a last impression of red cheeks,
|
|
blue rippling beard, and intolerant eyes, as he waved me out of the room.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V
|
|
|
|
"Question!"
|
|
|
|
What with the physical shocks incidental to my first interview
|
|
with Professor Challenger and the mental ones which accompanied
|
|
the second, I was a somewhat demoralized journalist by the time
|
|
I found myself in Enmore Park once more. In my aching head
|
|
the one thought was throbbing that there really was truth in this
|
|
man's story, that it was of tremendous consequence, and that it
|
|
would work up into inconceivable copy for the Gazette when I could
|
|
obtain permission to use it. A taxicab was waiting at the end
|
|
of the road, so I sprang into it and drove down to the office.
|
|
McArdle was at his post as usual.
|
|
|
|
"Well," he cried, expectantly, "what may it run to? I'm thinking,
|
|
young man, you have been in the wars. Don't tell me that he
|
|
assaulted you."
|
|
|
|
"We had a little difference at first."
|
|
|
|
"What a man it is! What did you do?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, he became more reasonable and we had a chat. But I got
|
|
nothing out of him--nothing for publication."
|
|
|
|
"I'm not so sure about that. You got a black eye out of him,
|
|
and that's for publication. We can't have this reign of terror,
|
|
Mr. Malone. We must bring the man to his bearings. I'll have a
|
|
leaderette on him to-morrow that will raise a blister. Just give
|
|
me the material and I will engage to brand the fellow for ever.
|
|
Professor Munchausen--how's that for an inset headline? Sir John
|
|
Mandeville redivivus--Cagliostro--all the imposters and bullies
|
|
in history. I'll show him up for the fraud he is."
|
|
|
|
"I wouldn't do that, sir."
|
|
|
|
"Why not?"
|
|
|
|
"Because he is not a fraud at all."
|
|
|
|
"What!" roared McArdle. "You don't mean to say you really believe
|
|
this stuff of his about mammoths and mastodons and great sea sairpents?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, I don't know about that. I don't think he makes any claims
|
|
of that kind. But I do believe he has got something new."
|
|
|
|
"Then for Heaven's sake, man, write it up!"
|
|
|
|
"I'm longing to, but all I know he gave me in confidence and
|
|
on condition that I didn't." I condensed into a few sentences
|
|
the Professor's narrative. "That's how it stands."
|
|
|
|
McArdle looked deeply incredulous.
|
|
|
|
"Well, Mr. Malone," he said at last, "about this scientific
|
|
meeting to-night; there can be no privacy about that, anyhow.
|
|
I don't suppose any paper will want to report it, for Waldron
|
|
has been reported already a dozen times, and no one is aware
|
|
that Challenger will speak. We may get a scoop, if we are lucky.
|
|
You'll be there in any case, so you'll just give us a pretty
|
|
full report. I'll keep space up to midnight."
|
|
|
|
My day was a busy one, and I had an early dinner at the Savage Club
|
|
with Tarp Henry, to whom I gave some account of my adventures.
|
|
He listened with a sceptical smile on his gaunt face, and roared
|
|
with laughter on hearing that the Professor had convinced me.
|
|
|
|
"My dear chap, things don't happen like that in real life.
|
|
People don't stumble upon enormous discoveries and then lose
|
|
their evidence. Leave that to the novelists. The fellow is
|
|
as full of tricks as the monkey-house at the Zoo. It's all bosh."
|
|
|
|
"But the American poet?"
|
|
|
|
"He never existed."
|
|
|
|
"I saw his sketch-book."
|
|
|
|
"Challenger's sketch-book."
|
|
|
|
"You think he drew that animal?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course he did. Who else?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, the photographs?"
|
|
|
|
"There was nothing in the photographs. By your own admission you
|
|
only saw a bird."
|
|
|
|
"A pterodactyl."
|
|
|
|
"That's what HE says. He put the pterodactyl into your head."
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, the bones?"
|
|
|
|
"First one out of an Irish stew. Second one vamped up
|
|
for the occasion. If you are clever and know your business
|
|
you can fake a bone as easily as you can a photograph."
|
|
|
|
I began to feel uneasy. Perhaps, after all, I had been premature
|
|
in my acquiescence. Then I had a sudden happy thought.
|
|
|
|
"Will you come to the meeting?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
Tarp Henry looked thoughtful.
|
|
|
|
"He is not a popular person, the genial Challenger," said he.
|
|
"A lot of people have accounts to settle with him. I should say
|
|
he is about the best-hated man in London. If the medical students
|
|
turn out there will be no end of a rag. I don't want to get into
|
|
a bear-garden."
|
|
|
|
"You might at least do him the justice to hear him state his own case."
|
|
|
|
"Well, perhaps it's only fair. All right. I'm your man for the evening."
|
|
|
|
When we arrived at the hall we found a much greater concourse than
|
|
I had expected. A line of electric broughams discharged their
|
|
little cargoes of white-bearded professors, while the dark stream
|
|
of humbler pedestrians, who crowded through the arched door-way,
|
|
showed that the audience would be popular as well as scientific.
|
|
Indeed, it became evident to us as soon as we had taken our seats
|
|
that a youthful and even boyish spirit was abroad in the gallery
|
|
and the back portions of the hall. Looking behind me, I could see
|
|
rows of faces of the familiar medical student type. Apparently the
|
|
great hospitals had each sent down their contingent. The behavior
|
|
of the audience at present was good-humored, but mischievous.
|
|
Scraps of popular songs were chorused with an enthusiasm which was
|
|
a strange prelude to a scientific lecture, and there was already a
|
|
tendency to personal chaff which promised a jovial evening to others,
|
|
however embarrassing it might be to the recipients of these dubious honors.
|
|
|
|
Thus, when old Doctor Meldrum, with his well-known curly-brimmed
|
|
opera-hat, appeared upon the platform, there was such a universal
|
|
query of "Where DID you get that tile?" that he hurriedly removed it,
|
|
and concealed it furtively under his chair. When gouty Professor
|
|
Wadley limped down to his seat there were general affectionate
|
|
inquiries from all parts of the hall as to the exact state
|
|
of his poor toe, which caused him obvious embarrassment.
|
|
The greatest demonstration of all, however, was at the entrance of my
|
|
new acquaintance, Professor Challenger, when he passed down to take
|
|
his place at the extreme end of the front row of the platform.
|
|
Such a yell of welcome broke forth when his black beard first
|
|
protruded round the corner that I began to suspect Tarp Henry
|
|
was right in his surmise, and that this assemblage was there not
|
|
merely for the sake of the lecture, but because it had got rumored
|
|
abroad that the famous Professor would take part in the proceedings.
|
|
|
|
There was some sympathetic laughter on his entrance among the front
|
|
benches of well-dressed spectators, as though the demonstration
|
|
of the students in this instance was not unwelcome to them.
|
|
That greeting was, indeed, a frightful outburst of sound, the uproar
|
|
of the carnivora cage when the step of the bucket-bearing keeper is heard
|
|
in the distance. There was an offensive tone in it, perhaps, and yet
|
|
in the main it struck me as mere riotous outcry, the noisy reception
|
|
of one who amused and interested them, rather than of one they disliked
|
|
or despised. Challenger smiled with weary and tolerant contempt,
|
|
as a kindly man would meet the yapping of a litter of puppies.
|
|
He sat slowly down, blew out his chest, passed his hand caressingly
|
|
down his beard, and looked with drooping eyelids and supercilious
|
|
eyes at the crowded hall before him. The uproar of his advent
|
|
had not yet died away when Professor Ronald Murray, the chairman,
|
|
and Mr. Waldron, the lecturer, threaded their way to the front,
|
|
and the proceedings began.
|
|
|
|
Professor Murray will, I am sure, excuse me if I say that he
|
|
has the common fault of most Englishmen of being inaudible.
|
|
Why on earth people who have something to say which is worth hearing
|
|
should not take the slight trouble to learn how to make it heard
|
|
is one of the strange mysteries of modern life. Their methods are
|
|
as reasonable as to try to pour some precious stuff from the spring
|
|
to the reservoir through a non-conducting pipe, which could by
|
|
the least effort be opened. Professor Murray made several profound
|
|
remarks to his white tie and to the water-carafe upon the table,
|
|
with a humorous, twinkling aside to the silver candlestick upon his right.
|
|
Then he sat down, and Mr. Waldron, the famous popular lecturer,
|
|
rose amid a general murmur of applause. He was a stern, gaunt man,
|
|
with a harsh voice, and an aggressive manner, but he had the merit
|
|
of knowing how to assimilate the ideas of other men, and to pass
|
|
them on in a way which was intelligible and even interesting to
|
|
the lay public, with a happy knack of being funny about the most
|
|
unlikely objects, so that the precession of the Equinox or the formation
|
|
of a vertebrate became a highly humorous process as treated by him.
|
|
|
|
It was a bird's-eye view of creation, as interpreted by science,
|
|
which, in language always clear and sometimes picturesque, he unfolded
|
|
before us. He told us of the globe, a huge mass of flaming gas,
|
|
flaring through the heavens. Then he pictured the solidification,
|
|
the cooling, the wrinkling which formed the mountains, the steam
|
|
which turned to water, the slow preparation of the stage upon which was
|
|
to be played the inexplicable drama of life. On the origin of life
|
|
itself he was discreetly vague. That the germs of it could hardly
|
|
have survived the original roasting was, he declared, fairly certain.
|
|
Therefore it had come later. Had it built itself out of the cooling,
|
|
inorganic elements of the globe? Very likely. Had the germs of it
|
|
arrived from outside upon a meteor? It was hardly conceivable.
|
|
On the whole, the wisest man was the least dogmatic upon the point.
|
|
We could not--or at least we had not succeeded up to date in making
|
|
organic life in our laboratories out of inorganic materials.
|
|
The gulf between the dead and the living was something which our
|
|
chemistry could not as yet bridge. But there was a higher and
|
|
subtler chemistry of Nature, which, working with great forces over
|
|
long epochs, might well produce results which were impossible for us.
|
|
There the matter must be left.
|
|
|
|
This brought the lecturer to the great ladder of animal life,
|
|
beginning low down in molluscs and feeble sea creatures, then up
|
|
rung by rung through reptiles and fishes, till at last we came
|
|
to a kangaroo-rat, a creature which brought forth its young alive,
|
|
the direct ancestor of all mammals, and presumably, therefore,
|
|
of everyone in the audience. ("No, no," from a sceptical student in
|
|
the back row.) If the young gentleman in the red tie who cried "No, no,"
|
|
and who presumably claimed to have been hatched out of an egg,
|
|
would wait upon him after the lecture, he would be glad to see such
|
|
a curiosity. (Laughter.) It was strange to think that the climax
|
|
of all the age-long process of Nature had been the creation
|
|
of that gentleman in the red tie. But had the process stopped?
|
|
Was this gentleman to be taken as the final type--the be-all
|
|
and end-all of development? He hoped that he would not hurt
|
|
the feelings of the gentleman in the red tie if he maintained that,
|
|
whatever virtues that gentleman might possess in private life,
|
|
still the vast processes of the universe were not fully justified
|
|
if they were to end entirely in his production. Evolution was not
|
|
a spent force, but one still working, and even greater achievements
|
|
were in store.
|
|
|
|
Having thus, amid a general titter, played very prettily with
|
|
his interrupter, the lecturer went back to his picture of the past,
|
|
the drying of the seas, the emergence of the sand-bank, the sluggish,
|
|
viscous life which lay upon their margins, the overcrowded lagoons,
|
|
the tendency of the sea creatures to take refuge upon the mud-flats,
|
|
the abundance of food awaiting them, their consequent enormous growth.
|
|
"Hence, ladies and gentlemen," he added, "that frightful brood
|
|
of saurians which still affright our eyes when seen in the Wealden
|
|
or in the Solenhofen slates, but which were fortunately extinct long
|
|
before the first appearance of mankind upon this planet."
|
|
|
|
"Question!" boomed a voice from the platform.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Waldron was a strict disciplinarian with a gift of acid humor,
|
|
as exemplified upon the gentleman with the red tie, which made
|
|
it perilous to interrupt him. But this interjection appeared
|
|
to him so absurd that he was at a loss how to deal with it.
|
|
So looks the Shakespearean who is confronted by a rancid Baconian,
|
|
or the astronomer who is assailed by a flat-earth fanatic. He paused
|
|
for a moment, and then, raising his voice, repeated slowly the words:
|
|
"Which were extinct before the coming of man."
|
|
|
|
"Question!" boomed the voice once more.
|
|
|
|
Waldron looked with amazement along the line of professors upon
|
|
the platform until his eyes fell upon the figure of Challenger,
|
|
who leaned back in his chair with closed eyes and an amused expression,
|
|
as if he were smiling in his sleep.
|
|
|
|
"I see!" said Waldron, with a shrug. "It is my friend
|
|
Professor Challenger," and amid laughter he renewed
|
|
his lecture as if this was a final explanation and no more need be said.
|
|
|
|
But the incident was far from being closed. Whatever path
|
|
the lecturer took amid the wilds of the past seemed invariably
|
|
to lead him to some assertion as to extinct or prehistoric life
|
|
which instantly brought the same bulls' bellow from the Professor.
|
|
The audience began to anticipate it and to roar with delight
|
|
when it came. The packed benches of students joined in, and every
|
|
time Challenger's beard opened, before any sound could come forth,
|
|
there was a yell of "Question!" from a hundred voices, and an
|
|
answering counter cry of "Order!" and "Shame!" from as many more.
|
|
Waldron, though a hardened lecturer and a strong man, became rattled.
|
|
He hesitated, stammered, repeated himself, got snarled in
|
|
a long sentence, and finally turned furiously upon the cause of his troubles.
|
|
|
|
"This is really intolerable!" he cried, glaring across the platform.
|
|
"I must ask you, Professor Challenger, to cease these ignorant and
|
|
unmannerly interruptions."
|
|
|
|
There was a hush over the hall, the students rigid with delight
|
|
at seeing the high gods on Olympus quarrelling among themselves.
|
|
Challenger levered his bulky figure slowly out of his chair.
|
|
|
|
"I must in turn ask you, Mr. Waldron," he said, "to cease to make
|
|
assertions which are not in strict accordance with scientific fact."
|
|
|
|
The words unloosed a tempest. "Shame! Shame!" "Give him a hearing!"
|
|
"Put him out!" "Shove him off the platform!" "Fair play!"
|
|
emerged from a general roar of amusement or execration. The chairman
|
|
was on his feet flapping both his hands and bleating excitedly.
|
|
"Professor Challenger--personal--views later," were the solid
|
|
peaks above his clouds of inaudible mutter. The interrupter
|
|
bowed, smiled, stroked his beard, and relapsed into his chair.
|
|
Waldron, very flushed and warlike, continued his observations.
|
|
Now and then, as he made an assertion, he shot a venomous glance at
|
|
his opponent, who seemed to be slumbering deeply, with the same broad,
|
|
happy smile upon his face.
|
|
|
|
At last the lecture came to an end--I am inclined to think that it
|
|
was a premature one, as the peroration was hurried and disconnected.
|
|
The thread of the argument had been rudely broken, and the audience
|
|
was restless and expectant. Waldron sat down, and, after a chirrup
|
|
from the chairman, Professor Challenger rose and advanced to the edge
|
|
of the platform. In the interests of my paper I took down his
|
|
speech verbatim.
|
|
|
|
"Ladies and Gentlemen," he began, amid a sustained interruption
|
|
from the back. "I beg pardon--Ladies, Gentlemen, and Children--
|
|
I must apologize, I had inadvertently omitted a considerable
|
|
section of this audience" (tumult, during which the Professor stood
|
|
with one hand raised and his enormous head nodding sympathetically,
|
|
as if he were bestowing a pontifical blessing upon the crowd),
|
|
"I have been selected to move a vote of thanks to Mr. Waldron
|
|
for the very picturesque and imaginative address to which we have
|
|
just listened. There are points in it with which I disagree, and it
|
|
has been my duty to indicate them as they arose, but, none the less,
|
|
Mr. Waldron has accomplished his object well, that object being
|
|
to give a simple and interesting account of what he conceives to have
|
|
been the history of our planet. Popular lectures are the easiest
|
|
to listen to, but Mr. Waldron" (here he beamed and blinked at
|
|
the lecturer) "will excuse me when I say that they are necessarily
|
|
both superficial and misleading, since they have to be graded to
|
|
the comprehension of an ignorant audience." (Ironical cheering.)
|
|
"Popular lecturers are in their nature parasitic." (Angry gesture
|
|
of protest from Mr. Waldron.) "They exploit for fame or cash the work
|
|
which has been done by their indigent and unknown brethren.
|
|
One smallest new fact obtained in the laboratory, one brick built
|
|
into the temple of science, far outweighs any second-hand exposition
|
|
which passes an idle hour, but can leave no useful result behind it.
|
|
I put forward this obvious reflection, not out of any desire to
|
|
disparage Mr. Waldron in particular, but that you may not lose your
|
|
sense of proportion and mistake the acolyte for the high priest."
|
|
(At this point Mr. Waldron whispered to the chairman, who half
|
|
rose and said something severely to his water-carafe.) "But enough
|
|
of this!" (Loud and prolonged cheers.) "Let me pass to some subject
|
|
of wider interest. What is the particular point upon which I,
|
|
as an original investigator, have challenged our lecturer's accuracy?
|
|
It is upon the permanence of certain types of animal life upon
|
|
the earth. I do not speak upon this subject as an amateur,
|
|
nor, I may add, as a popular lecturer, but I speak as one whose
|
|
scientific conscience compels him to adhere closely to facts,
|
|
when I say that Mr. Waldron is very wrong in supposing that
|
|
because he has never himself seen a so-called prehistoric animal,
|
|
therefore these creatures no longer exist. They are indeed, as he
|
|
has said, our ancestors, but they are, if I may use the expression,
|
|
our contemporary ancestors, who can still be found with all their
|
|
hideous and formidable characteristics if one has but the energy
|
|
and hardihood to seek their haunts. Creatures which were supposed
|
|
to be Jurassic, monsters who would hunt down and devour our
|
|
largest and fiercest mammals, still exist." (Cries of "Bosh!"
|
|
"Prove it!" "How do YOU know?" "Question!") "How do I know,
|
|
you ask me? I know because I have visited their secret haunts.
|
|
I know because I have seen some of them." (Applause, uproar,
|
|
and a voice, "Liar!") "Am I a liar?" (General hearty and noisy assent.)
|
|
"Did I hear someone say that I was a liar? Will the person who
|
|
called me a liar kindly stand up that I may know him?" (A voice,
|
|
"Here he is, sir!" and an inoffensive little person in spectacles,
|
|
struggling violently, was held up among a group of students.) "Did you
|
|
venture to call me a liar?" ("No, sir, no!" shouted the accused,
|
|
and disappeared like a jack-in-the-box.) "If any person in this
|
|
hall dares to doubt my veracity, I shall be glad to have a few
|
|
words with him after the lecture." ("Liar!") "Who said that?"
|
|
(Again the inoffensive one plunging desperately, was elevated high
|
|
into the air.) "If I come down among you----" (General chorus of
|
|
"Come, love, come!" which interrupted the proceedings for some moments,
|
|
while the chairman, standing up and waving both his arms, seemed to
|
|
be conducting the music. The Professor, with his face flushed,
|
|
his nostrils dilated, and his beard bristling, was now in a
|
|
proper Berserk mood.) "Every great discoverer has been met with
|
|
the same incredulity--the sure brand of a generation of fools.
|
|
When great facts are laid before you, you have not the intuition,
|
|
the imagination which would help you to understand them. You can only
|
|
throw mud at the men who have risked their lives to open new fields
|
|
to science. You persecute the prophets! Galileo! Darwin, and I----"
|
|
(Prolonged cheering and complete interruption.)
|
|
|
|
All this is from my hurried notes taken at the time, which give
|
|
little notion of the absolute chaos to which the assembly had by
|
|
this time been reduced. So terrific was the uproar that several
|
|
ladies had already beaten a hurried retreat. Grave and reverend
|
|
seniors seemed to have caught the prevailing spirit as badly
|
|
as the students, and I saw white-bearded men rising and shaking
|
|
their fists at the obdurate Professor. The whole great audience
|
|
seethed and simmered like a boiling pot. The Professor took a step
|
|
forward and raised both his hands. There was something so big and
|
|
arresting and virile in the man that the clatter and shouting died
|
|
gradually away before his commanding gesture and his masterful eyes.
|
|
He seemed to have a definite message. They hushed to hear it.
|
|
|
|
"I will not detain you," he said. "It is not worth it. Truth is truth,
|
|
and the noise of a number of foolish young men--and, I fear I must add,
|
|
of their equally foolish seniors--cannot affect the matter.
|
|
I claim that I have opened a new field of science. You dispute it."
|
|
(Cheers.) "Then I put you to the test. Will you accredit one or
|
|
more of your own number to go out as your representatives and test
|
|
my statement in your name?"
|
|
|
|
Mr. Summerlee, the veteran Professor of Comparative Anatomy,
|
|
rose among the audience, a tall, thin, bitter man, with the withered
|
|
aspect of a theologian. He wished, he said, to ask Professor
|
|
Challenger whether the results to which he had alluded in his
|
|
remarks had been obtained during a journey to the headwaters
|
|
of the Amazon made by him two years before.
|
|
|
|
Professor Challenger answered that they had.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Summerlee desired to know how it was that Professor Challenger
|
|
claimed to have made discoveries in those regions which had been
|
|
overlooked by Wallace, Bates, and other previous explorers
|
|
of established scientific repute.
|
|
|
|
Professor Challenger answered that Mr. Summerlee appeared to be
|
|
confusing the Amazon with the Thames; that it was in reality
|
|
a somewhat larger river; that Mr. Summerlee might be interested
|
|
to know that with the Orinoco, which communicated with it, some fifty
|
|
thousand miles of country were opened up, and that in so vast a space
|
|
it was not impossible for one person to find what another had missed.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Summerlee declared, with an acid smile, that he fully
|
|
appreciated the difference between the Thames and the Amazon,
|
|
which lay in the fact that any assertion about the former could
|
|
be tested, while about the latter it could not. He would be obliged
|
|
if Professor Challenger would give the latitude and the longitude
|
|
of the country in which prehistoric animals were to be found.
|
|
|
|
Professor Challenger replied that he reserved such information
|
|
for good reasons of his own, but would be prepared to give it
|
|
with proper precautions to a committee chosen from the audience.
|
|
Would Mr. Summerlee serve on such a committee and test his story
|
|
in person?
|
|
|
|
Mr. Summerlee: "Yes, I will." (Great cheering.)
|
|
|
|
Professor Challenger: "Then I guarantee that I will place in
|
|
your hands such material as will enable you to find your way.
|
|
It is only right, however, since Mr. Summerlee goes to check my
|
|
statement that I should have one or more with him who may check his.
|
|
I will not disguise from you that there are difficulties and dangers.
|
|
Mr. Summerlee will need a younger colleague. May I ask for volunteers?"
|
|
|
|
It is thus that the great crisis of a man's life springs out at him.
|
|
Could I have imagined when I entered that hall that I was about to pledge
|
|
myself to a wilder adventure than had ever come to me in my dreams?
|
|
But Gladys--was it not the very opportunity of which she spoke?
|
|
Gladys would have told me to go. I had sprung to my feet.
|
|
I was speaking, and yet I had prepared no words. Tarp Henry,
|
|
my companion, was plucking at my skirts and I heard him whispering,
|
|
"Sit down, Malone! Don't make a public ass of yourself." At the same
|
|
time I was aware that a tall, thin man, with dark gingery hair,
|
|
a few seats in front of me, was also upon his feet. He glared back
|
|
at me with hard angry eyes, but I refused to give way.
|
|
|
|
"I will go, Mr. Chairman," I kept repeating over and over again.
|
|
|
|
"Name! Name!" cried the audience.
|
|
|
|
"My name is Edward Dunn Malone. I am the reporter of the Daily Gazette.
|
|
I claim to be an absolutely unprejudiced witness."
|
|
|
|
"What is YOUR name, sir?" the chairman asked of my tall rival.
|
|
|
|
"I am Lord John Roxton. I have already been up the Amazon, I know
|
|
all the ground, and have special qualifications for this investigation."
|
|
|
|
"Lord John Roxton's reputation as a sportsman and a traveler is,
|
|
of course, world-famous," said the chairman; "at the same time it
|
|
would certainly be as well to have a member of the Press upon such
|
|
an expedition."
|
|
|
|
"Then I move," said Professor Challenger, "that both these gentlemen
|
|
be elected, as representatives of this meeting, to accompany
|
|
Professor Summerlee upon his journey to investigate and to report
|
|
upon the truth of my statements."
|
|
|
|
And so, amid shouting and cheering, our fate was decided, and I found
|
|
myself borne away in the human current which swirled towards the door,
|
|
with my mind half stunned by the vast new project which had risen
|
|
so suddenly before it. As I emerged from the hall I was conscious
|
|
for a moment of a rush of laughing students--down the pavement,
|
|
and of an arm wielding a heavy umbrella, which rose and fell
|
|
in the midst of them. Then, amid a mixture of groans and cheers,
|
|
Professor Challenger's electric brougham slid from the curb, and I
|
|
found myself walking under the silvery lights of Regent Street,
|
|
full of thoughts of Gladys and of wonder as to my future.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly there was a touch at my elbow. I turned, and found myself
|
|
looking into the humorous, masterful eyes of the tall, thin man
|
|
who had volunteered to be my companion on this strange quest.
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Malone, I understand," said he. "We are to be companions--
|
|
what? My rooms are just over the road, in the Albany.
|
|
Perhaps you would have the kindness to spare me half an hour,
|
|
for there are one or two things that I badly want to say to you."
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI
|
|
|
|
"I was the Flail of the Lord"
|
|
|
|
Lord John Roxton and I turned down Vigo Street together and
|
|
through the dingy portals of the famous aristocratic rookery.
|
|
At the end of a long drab passage my new acquaintance pushed open
|
|
a door and turned on an electric switch. A number of lamps shining
|
|
through tinted shades bathed the whole great room before us in a
|
|
ruddy radiance. Standing in the doorway and glancing round me,
|
|
I had a general impression of extraordinary comfort and elegance
|
|
combined with an atmosphere of masculine virility. Everywhere there
|
|
were mingled the luxury of the wealthy man of taste and the careless
|
|
untidiness of the bachelor. Rich furs and strange iridescent
|
|
mats from some Oriental bazaar were scattered upon the floor.
|
|
Pictures and prints which even my unpractised eyes could recognize
|
|
as being of great price and rarity hung thick upon the walls.
|
|
Sketches of boxers, of ballet-girls, and of racehorses alternated
|
|
with a sensuous Fragonard, a martial Girardet, and a dreamy Turner.
|
|
But amid these varied ornaments there were scattered the trophies
|
|
which brought back strongly to my recollection the fact that Lord
|
|
John Roxton was one of the great all-round sportsmen and athletes
|
|
of his day. A dark-blue oar crossed with a cherry-pink one
|
|
above his mantel-piece spoke of the old Oxonian and Leander man,
|
|
while the foils and boxing-gloves above and below them were the tools
|
|
of a man who had won supremacy with each. Like a dado round
|
|
the room was the jutting line of splendid heavy game-heads, the best
|
|
of their sort from every quarter of the world, with the rare white
|
|
rhinoceros of the Lado Enclave drooping its supercilious lip above
|
|
them all.
|
|
|
|
In the center of the rich red carpet was a black and gold Louis
|
|
Quinze table, a lovely antique, now sacrilegiously desecrated with
|
|
marks of glasses and the scars of cigar-stumps. On it stood a silver
|
|
tray of smokables and a burnished spirit-stand, from which and an
|
|
adjacent siphon my silent host proceeded to charge two high glasses.
|
|
Having indicated an arm-chair to me and placed my refreshment near it,
|
|
he handed me a long, smooth Havana. Then, seating himself opposite
|
|
to me, he looked at me long and fixedly with his strange, twinkling,
|
|
reckless eyes--eyes of a cold light blue, the color of a glacier lake.
|
|
|
|
Through the thin haze of my cigar-smoke I noted the details
|
|
of a face which was already familiar to me from many photographs--
|
|
the strongly-curved nose, the hollow, worn cheeks, the dark,
|
|
ruddy hair, thin at the top, the crisp, virile moustaches, the small,
|
|
aggressive tuft upon his projecting chin. Something there was of
|
|
Napoleon III., something of Don Quixote, and yet again something which
|
|
was the essence of the English country gentleman, the keen, alert,
|
|
open-air lover of dogs and of horses. His skin was of a rich flower-pot
|
|
red from sun and wind. His eyebrows were tufted and overhanging,
|
|
which gave those naturally cold eyes an almost ferocious aspect,
|
|
an impression which was increased by his strong and furrowed brow.
|
|
In figure he was spare, but very strongly built--indeed, he had
|
|
often proved that there were few men in England capable of such
|
|
sustained exertions. His height was a little over six feet, but he
|
|
seemed shorter on account of a peculiar rounding of the shoulders.
|
|
Such was the famous Lord John Roxton as he sat opposite to me,
|
|
biting hard upon his cigar and watching me steadily in a long
|
|
and embarrassing silence.
|
|
|
|
"Well," said he, at last, "we've gone and done it, young fellah
|
|
my lad." (This curious phrase he pronounced as if it were all
|
|
one word--"young-fellah-me-lad.") "Yes, we've taken a jump,
|
|
you an' me. I suppose, now, when you went into that room there
|
|
was no such notion in your head--what?"
|
|
|
|
"No thought of it."
|
|
|
|
"The same here. No thought of it. And here we are, up to our necks
|
|
in the tureen. Why, I've only been back three weeks from Uganda,
|
|
and taken a place in Scotland, and signed the lease and all.
|
|
Pretty goin's on--what? How does it hit you?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, it is all in the main line of my business. I am a journalist
|
|
on the Gazette."
|
|
|
|
"Of course--you said so when you took it on. By the way, I've got
|
|
a small job for you, if you'll help me."
|
|
|
|
"With pleasure."
|
|
|
|
"Don't mind takin' a risk, do you?"
|
|
|
|
"What is the risk?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, it's Ballinger--he's the risk. You've heard of him?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Why, young fellah, where HAVE you lived? Sir John Ballinger is the best
|
|
gentleman jock in the north country. I could hold him on the flat
|
|
at my best, but over jumps he's my master. Well, it's an open secret
|
|
that when he's out of trainin' he drinks hard--strikin' an average,
|
|
he calls it. He got delirium on Toosday, and has been ragin'
|
|
like a devil ever since. His room is above this. The doctors say
|
|
that it is all up with the old dear unless some food is got into him,
|
|
but as he lies in bed with a revolver on his coverlet, and swears
|
|
he will put six of the best through anyone that comes near him,
|
|
there's been a bit of a strike among the serving-men. He's a hard nail,
|
|
is Jack, and a dead shot, too, but you can't leave a Grand National
|
|
winner to die like that--what?"
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean to do, then?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Well, my idea was that you and I could rush him. He may be dozin',
|
|
and at the worst he can only wing one of us, and the other should
|
|
have him. If we can get his bolster-cover round his arms and then
|
|
'phone up a stomach-pump, we'll give the old dear the supper of his life."
|
|
|
|
It was a rather desperate business to come suddenly into one's
|
|
day's work. I don't think that I am a particularly brave man.
|
|
I have an Irish imagination which makes the unknown and the untried
|
|
more terrible than they are. On the other hand, I was brought up
|
|
with a horror of cowardice and with a terror of such a stigma.
|
|
I dare say that I could throw myself over a precipice, like the Hun
|
|
in the history books, if my courage to do it were questioned, and yet
|
|
it would surely be pride and fear, rather than courage, which would
|
|
be my inspiration. Therefore, although every nerve in my body shrank
|
|
from the whisky-maddened figure which I pictured in the room above,
|
|
I still answered, in as careless a voice as I could command,
|
|
that I was ready to go. Some further remark of Lord Roxton's about
|
|
the danger only made me irritable.
|
|
|
|
"Talking won't make it any better," said I. "Come on."
|
|
|
|
I rose from my chair and he from his. Then with a little confidential
|
|
chuckle of laughter, he patted me two or three times on the chest,
|
|
finally pushing me back into my chair.
|
|
|
|
"All right, sonny my lad--you'll do," said he. I looked up in surprise.
|
|
|
|
"I saw after Jack Ballinger myself this mornin'. He blew a hole
|
|
in the skirt of my kimono, bless his shaky old hand, but we got
|
|
a jacket on him, and he's to be all right in a week. I say,
|
|
young fellah, I hope you don't mind--what? You see, between you an'
|
|
me close-tiled, I look on this South American business as a mighty
|
|
serious thing, and if I have a pal with me I want a man I can
|
|
bank on. So I sized you down, and I'm bound to say that you came
|
|
well out of it. You see, it's all up to you and me, for this old
|
|
Summerlee man will want dry-nursin' from the first. By the way,
|
|
are you by any chance the Malone who is expected to get his Rugby cap
|
|
for Ireland?"
|
|
|
|
"A reserve, perhaps."
|
|
|
|
"I thought I remembered your face. Why, I was there when you
|
|
got that try against Richmond--as fine a swervin' run as I saw
|
|
the whole season. I never miss a Rugby match if I can help it,
|
|
for it is the manliest game we have left. Well, I didn't ask
|
|
you in here just to talk sport. We've got to fix our business.
|
|
Here are the sailin's, on the first page of the Times. There's a
|
|
Booth boat for Para next Wednesday week, and if the Professor
|
|
and you can work it, I think we should take it--what? Very good,
|
|
I'll fix it with him. What about your outfit?"
|
|
|
|
"My paper will see to that."
|
|
|
|
"Can you shoot?"
|
|
|
|
"About average Territorial standard."
|
|
|
|
"Good Lord! as bad as that? It's the last thing you young fellahs
|
|
think of learnin'. You're all bees without stings, so far as lookin'
|
|
after the hive goes. You'll look silly, some o' these days,
|
|
when someone comes along an' sneaks the honey. But you'll need
|
|
to hold your gun straight in South America, for, unless our friend
|
|
the Professor is a madman or a liar, we may see some queer things
|
|
before we get back. What gun have you?"
|
|
|
|
He crossed to an oaken cupboard, and as he threw it open I caught
|
|
a glimpse of glistening rows of parallel barrels, like the pipes
|
|
of an organ.
|
|
|
|
"I'll see what I can spare you out of my own battery," said he.
|
|
|
|
One by one he took out a succession of beautiful rifles, opening and
|
|
shutting them with a snap and a clang, and then patting them as he put
|
|
them back into the rack as tenderly as a mother would fondle her children.
|
|
|
|
"This is a Bland's .577 axite express," said he. "I got that
|
|
big fellow with it." He glanced up at the white rhinoceros.
|
|
"Ten more yards, and he'd would have added me to HIS collection.
|
|
|
|
|
|
`On that conical bullet his one chance hangs,
|
|
'Tis the weak one's advantage fair.'
|
|
|
|
Hope you know your Gordon, for he's the poet of the horse and the gun
|
|
and the man that handles both. Now, here's a useful tool--.470,
|
|
telescopic sight, double ejector, point-blank up to three-fifty. That's
|
|
the rifle I used against the Peruvian slave-drivers three years ago.
|
|
I was the flail of the Lord up in those parts, I may tell you,
|
|
though you won't find it in any Blue-book. There are times,
|
|
young fellah, when every one of us must make a stand for human
|
|
right and justice, or you never feel clean again. That's why I
|
|
made a little war on my own. Declared it myself, waged it myself,
|
|
ended it myself. Each of those nicks is for a slave murderer--
|
|
a good row of them--what? That big one is for Pedro Lopez, the king
|
|
of them all, that I killed in a backwater of the Putomayo River.
|
|
Now, here's something that would do for you." He took out a beautiful
|
|
brown-and-silver rifle. "Well rubbered at the stock, sharply sighted,
|
|
five cartridges to the clip. You can trust your life to that."
|
|
He handed it to me and closed the door of his oak cabinet.
|
|
|
|
"By the way," he continued, coming back to his chair, "what do you
|
|
know of this Professor Challenger?"
|
|
|
|
"I never saw him till to-day."
|
|
|
|
"Well, neither did I. It's funny we should both sail under sealed
|
|
orders from a man we don't know. He seemed an uppish old bird.
|
|
His brothers of science don't seem too fond of him, either. How came
|
|
you to take an interest in the affair?"
|
|
|
|
I told him shortly my experiences of the morning, and he listened intently.
|
|
Then he drew out a map of South America and laid it on the table.
|
|
|
|
"I believe every single word he said to you was the truth,"
|
|
said he, earnestly, "and, mind you, I have something to go on when I
|
|
speak like that. South America is a place I love, and I think,
|
|
if you take it right through from Darien to Fuego, it's the grandest,
|
|
richest, most wonderful bit of earth upon this planet. People don't
|
|
know it yet, and don't realize what it may become. I've been up an'
|
|
down it from end to end, and had two dry seasons in those very parts,
|
|
as I told you when I spoke of the war I made on the slave-dealers.
|
|
Well, when I was up there I heard some yarns of the same kind--
|
|
traditions of Indians and the like, but with somethin' behind them,
|
|
no doubt. The more you knew of that country, young fellah, the more
|
|
you would understand that anythin' was possible--ANYTHIN'1. There
|
|
are just some narrow water-lanes along which folk travel, and outside
|
|
that it is all darkness. Now, down here in the Matto Grande"--
|
|
he swept his cigar over a part of the map--"or up in this corner
|
|
where three countries meet, nothin' would surprise me. As that chap
|
|
said to-night, there are fifty-thousand miles of water-way runnin'
|
|
through a forest that is very near the size of Europe. You and I could
|
|
be as far away from each other as Scotland is from Constantinople,
|
|
and yet each of us be in the same great Brazilian forest.
|
|
Man has just made a track here and a scrape there in the maze.
|
|
Why, the river rises and falls the best part of forty feet,
|
|
and half the country is a morass that you can't pass over.
|
|
Why shouldn't somethin' new and wonderful lie in such a country?
|
|
And why shouldn't we be the men to find it out? Besides," he added,
|
|
his queer, gaunt face shining with delight, "there's a sportin'
|
|
risk in every mile of it. I'm like an old golf-ball--I've had all
|
|
the white paint knocked off me long ago. Life can whack me about now,
|
|
and it can't leave a mark. But a sportin' risk, young fellah,
|
|
that's the salt of existence. Then it's worth livin' again.
|
|
We're all gettin' a deal too soft and dull and comfy. Give me
|
|
the great waste lands and the wide spaces, with a gun in my fist
|
|
and somethin' to look for that's worth findin'. I've tried war
|
|
and steeplechasin' and aeroplanes, but this huntin' of beasts
|
|
that look like a lobster-supper dream is a brand-new sensation."
|
|
He chuckled with glee at the prospect.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps I have dwelt too long upon this new acquaintance, but he
|
|
is to be my comrade for many a day, and so I have tried to set him
|
|
down as I first saw him, with his quaint personality and his queer
|
|
little tricks of speech and of thought. It was only the need
|
|
of getting in the account of my meeting which drew me at last from
|
|
his company. I left him seated amid his pink radiance, oiling the
|
|
lock of his favorite rifle, while he still chuckled to himself at
|
|
the thought of the adventures which awaited us. It was very clear
|
|
to me that if dangers lay before us I could not in all England
|
|
have found a cooler head or a braver spirit with which to share them.
|
|
|
|
That night, wearied as I was after the wonderful happenings of
|
|
the day, I sat late with McArdle, the news editor, explaining to him
|
|
the whole situation, which he thought important enough to bring
|
|
next morning before the notice of Sir George Beaumont, the chief.
|
|
It was agreed that I should write home full accounts of my adventures
|
|
in the shape of successive letters to McArdle, and that these should
|
|
either be edited for the Gazette as they arrived, or held back to be
|
|
published later, according to the wishes of Professor Challenger,
|
|
since we could not yet know what conditions he might attach
|
|
to those directions which should guide us to the unknown land.
|
|
In response to a telephone inquiry, we received nothing more definite
|
|
than a fulmination against the Press, ending up with the remark
|
|
that if we would notify our boat he would hand us any directions
|
|
which he might think it proper to give us at the moment of starting.
|
|
A second question from us failed to elicit any answer at all,
|
|
save a plaintive bleat from his wife to the effect that her husband
|
|
was in a very violent temper already, and that she hoped we would
|
|
do nothing to make it worse. A third attempt, later in the day,
|
|
provoked a terrific crash, and a subsequent message from the Central
|
|
Exchange that Professor Challenger's receiver had been shattered.
|
|
After that we abandoned all attempt at communication.
|
|
|
|
And now my patient readers, I can address you directly no longer.
|
|
From now onwards (if, indeed, any continuation of this narrative should
|
|
ever reach you) it can only be through the paper which I represent.
|
|
In the hands of the editor I leave this account of the events which
|
|
have led up to one of the most remarkable expeditions of all time,
|
|
so that if I never return to England there shall be some record
|
|
as to how the affair came about. I am writing these last lines
|
|
in the saloon of the Booth liner Francisca, and they will go back
|
|
by the pilot to the keeping of Mr. McArdle. Let me draw one last
|
|
picture before I close the notebook--a picture which is the last
|
|
memory of the old country which I bear away with me. It is a wet,
|
|
foggy morning in the late spring; a thin, cold rain is falling.
|
|
Three shining mackintoshed figures are walking down the quay,
|
|
making for the gang-plank of the great liner from which the blue-peter
|
|
is flying. In front of them a porter pushes a trolley piled high
|
|
with trunks, wraps, and gun-cases. Professor Summerlee, a long,
|
|
melancholy figure, walks with dragging steps and drooping head,
|
|
as one who is already profoundly sorry for himself. Lord John
|
|
Roxton steps briskly, and his thin, eager face beams forth between
|
|
his hunting-cap and his muffler. As for myself, I am glad to have
|
|
got the bustling days of preparation and the pangs of leave-taking
|
|
behind me, and I have no doubt that I show it in my bearing.
|
|
Suddenly, just as we reach the vessel, there is a shout behind us.
|
|
It is Professor Challenger, who had promised to see us off. He runs
|
|
after us, a puffing, red-faced, irascible figure.
|
|
|
|
"No thank you," says he; "I should much prefer not to go aboard.
|
|
I have only a few words to say to you, and they can very well be
|
|
said where we are. I beg you not to imagine that I am in any way
|
|
indebted to you for making this journey. I would have you to
|
|
understand that it is a matter of perfect indifference to me, and I
|
|
refuse to entertain the most remote sense of personal obligation.
|
|
Truth is truth, and nothing which you can report can affect it in
|
|
any way, though it may excite the emotions and allay the curiosity
|
|
of a number of very ineffectual people. My directions for your
|
|
instruction and guidance are in this sealed envelope. You will open
|
|
it when you reach a town upon the Amazon which is called Manaos,
|
|
but not until the date and hour which is marked upon the outside.
|
|
Have I made myself clear? I leave the strict observance of my
|
|
conditions entirely to your honor. No, Mr. Malone, I will place
|
|
no restriction upon your correspondence, since the ventilation
|
|
of the facts is the object of your journey; but I demand that you
|
|
shall give no particulars as to your exact destination, and that
|
|
nothing be actually published until your return. Good-bye, sir.
|
|
You have done something to mitigate my feelings for the loathsome
|
|
profession to which you unhappily belong. Good-bye, Lord John.
|
|
Science is, as I understand, a sealed book to you; but you may
|
|
congratulate yourself upon the hunting-field which awaits you. You will,
|
|
no doubt, have the opportunity of describing in the Field how you
|
|
brought down the rocketing dimorphodon. And good-bye to you also,
|
|
Professor Summerlee. If you are still capable of self-improvement,
|
|
of which I am frankly unconvinced, you will surely return to London a
|
|
wiser man."
|
|
|
|
So he turned upon his heel, and a minute later from the deck I could
|
|
see his short, squat figure bobbing about in the distance as he made
|
|
his way back to his train. Well, we are well down Channel now.
|
|
There's the last bell for letters, and it's good-bye to the pilot.
|
|
We'll be "down, hull-down, on the old trail" from now on. God bless
|
|
all we leave behind us, and send us safely back.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow we Disappear into the Unknown"
|
|
|
|
I will not bore those whom this narrative may reach by an account
|
|
of our luxurious voyage upon the Booth liner, nor will I tell
|
|
of our week's stay at Para (save that I should wish to acknowledge
|
|
the great kindness of the Pereira da Pinta Company in helping us
|
|
to get together our equipment). I will also allude very briefly
|
|
to our river journey, up a wide, slow-moving, clay-tinted stream,
|
|
in a steamer which was little smaller than that which had carried us
|
|
across the Atlantic. Eventually we found ourselves through the narrows
|
|
of Obidos and reached the town of Manaos. Here we were rescued
|
|
from the limited attractions of the local inn by Mr. Shortman,
|
|
the representative of the British and Brazilian Trading Company.
|
|
In his hospital Fazenda we spent our time until the day when we
|
|
were empowered to open the letter of instructions given to us
|
|
by Professor Challenger. Before I reach the surprising events
|
|
of that date I would desire to give a clearer sketch of my comrades
|
|
in this enterprise, and of the associates whom we had already gathered
|
|
together in South America. I speak freely, and I leave the use of my
|
|
material to your own discretion, Mr. McArdle, since it is through
|
|
your hands that this report must pass before it reaches the world.
|
|
|
|
The scientific attainments of Professor Summerlee are too well known
|
|
for me to trouble to recapitulate them. He is better equipped for a
|
|
rough expedition of this sort than one would imagine at first sight.
|
|
His tall, gaunt, stringy figure is insensible to fatigue, and his dry,
|
|
half-sarcastic, and often wholly unsympathetic manner is uninfluenced
|
|
by any change in his surroundings. Though in his sixty-sixth year,
|
|
I have never heard him express any dissatisfaction at the occasional
|
|
hardships which we have had to encounter. I had regarded his presence
|
|
as an encumbrance to the expedition, but, as a matter of fact, I am
|
|
now well convinced that his power of endurance is as great as my own.
|
|
In temper he is naturally acid and sceptical. From the beginning
|
|
he has never concealed his belief that Professor Challenger is an
|
|
absolute fraud, that we are all embarked upon an absurd wild-goose
|
|
chase and that we are likely to reap nothing but disappointment
|
|
and danger in South America, and corresponding ridicule in England.
|
|
Such are the views which, with much passionate distortion
|
|
of his thin features and wagging of his thin, goat-like beard,
|
|
he poured into our ears all the way from Southampton to Manaos.
|
|
Since landing from the boat he has obtained some consolation from
|
|
the beauty and variety of the insect and bird life around him,
|
|
for he is absolutely whole-hearted in his devotion to science.
|
|
He spends his days flitting through the woods with his shot-gun and
|
|
his butterfly-net, and his evenings in mounting the many specimens he
|
|
has acquired. Among his minor peculiarities are that he is careless
|
|
as to his attire, unclean in his person, exceedingly absent-minded
|
|
in his habits, and addicted to smoking a short briar pipe,
|
|
which is seldom out of his mouth. He has been upon several
|
|
scientific expeditions in his youth (he was with Robertson in Papua),
|
|
and the life of the camp and the canoe is nothing fresh to him.
|
|
|
|
Lord John Roxton has some points in common with Professor Summerlee,
|
|
and others in which they are the very antithesis to each other.
|
|
He is twenty years younger, but has something of the same spare,
|
|
scraggy physique. As to his appearance, I have, as I recollect,
|
|
described it in that portion of my narrative which I have left
|
|
behind me in London. He is exceedingly neat and prim in his ways,
|
|
dresses always with great care in white drill suits and high brown
|
|
mosquito-boots, and shaves at least once a day. Like most men of action,
|
|
he is laconic in speech, and sinks readily into his own thoughts,
|
|
but he is always quick to answer a question or join in a conversation,
|
|
talking in a queer, jerky, half-humorous fashion. His knowledge
|
|
of the world, and very especially of South America, is surprising,
|
|
and he has a whole-hearted belief in the possibilities of our journey
|
|
which is not to be dashed by the sneers of Professor Summerlee.
|
|
He has a gentle voice and a quiet manner, but behind his twinkling blue
|
|
eyes there lurks a capacity for furious wrath and implacable resolution,
|
|
the more dangerous because they are held in leash. He spoke little
|
|
of his own exploits in Brazil and Peru, but it was a revelation to me
|
|
to find the excitement which was caused by his presence among the
|
|
riverine natives, who looked upon him as their champion and protector.
|
|
The exploits of the Red Chief, as they called him, had become legends
|
|
among them, but the real facts, as far as I could learn them,
|
|
were amazing enough.
|
|
|
|
These were that Lord John had found himself some years before in
|
|
that no-man's-land which is formed by the half-defined frontiers
|
|
between Peru, Brazil, and Columbia. In this great district the wild
|
|
rubber tree flourishes, and has become, as in the Congo, a curse
|
|
to the natives which can only be compared to their forced labor
|
|
under the Spaniards upon the old silver mines of Darien. A handful
|
|
of villainous half-breeds dominated the country, armed such Indians
|
|
as would support them, and turned the rest into slaves, terrorizing them
|
|
with the most inhuman tortures in order to force them to gather
|
|
the india-rubber, which was then floated down the river to Para.
|
|
Lord John Roxton expostulated on behalf of the wretched victims,
|
|
and received nothing but threats and insults for his pains.
|
|
He then formally declared war against Pedro Lopez, the leader of
|
|
the slave-drivers, enrolled a band of runaway slaves in his service,
|
|
armed them, and conducted a campaign, which ended by his killing
|
|
with his own hands the notorious half-breed and breaking down
|
|
the system which he represented.
|
|
|
|
No wonder that the ginger-headed man with the silky voice and the
|
|
free and easy manners was now looked upon with deep interest upon
|
|
the banks of the great South American river, though the feelings he
|
|
inspired were naturally mixed, since the gratitude of the natives
|
|
was equaled by the resentment of those who desired to exploit them.
|
|
One useful result of his former experiences was that he could
|
|
talk fluently in the Lingoa Geral, which is the peculiar talk,
|
|
one-third Portuguese and two-thirds Indian, which is current all
|
|
over Brazil.
|
|
|
|
I have said before that Lord John Roxton was a South Americomaniac.
|
|
He could not speak of that great country without ardor, and this
|
|
ardor was infectious, for, ignorant as I was, he fixed my attention
|
|
and stimulated my curiosity. How I wish I could reproduce the glamour
|
|
of his discourses, the peculiar mixture of accurate knowledge and
|
|
of racy imagination which gave them their fascination, until even
|
|
the Professor's cynical and sceptical smile would gradually vanish
|
|
from his thin face as he listened. He would tell the history of
|
|
the mighty river so rapidly explored (for some of the first conquerors
|
|
of Peru actually crossed the entire continent upon its waters),
|
|
and yet so unknown in regard to all that lay behind its ever-changing banks.
|
|
|
|
"What is there?" he would cry, pointing to the north. "Wood and
|
|
marsh and unpenetrated jungle. Who knows what it may shelter?
|
|
And there to the south? A wilderness of swampy forest, where no white
|
|
man has ever been. The unknown is up against us on every side.
|
|
Outside the narrow lines of the rivers what does anyone know?
|
|
Who will say what is possible in such a country? Why should old man
|
|
Challenger not be right?" At which direct defiance the stubborn sneer
|
|
would reappear upon Professor Summerlee's face, and he would sit,
|
|
shaking his sardonic head in unsympathetic silence, behind the cloud
|
|
of his briar-root pipe.
|
|
|
|
|
|
So much, for the moment, for my two white companions, whose characters
|
|
and limitations will be further exposed, as surely as my own,
|
|
as this narrative proceeds. But already we have enrolled certain
|
|
retainers who may play no small part in what is to come.
|
|
The first is a gigantic negro named Zambo, who is a black Hercules,
|
|
as willing as any horse, and about as intelligent. Him we enlisted
|
|
at Para, on the recommendation of the steamship company, on whose
|
|
vessels he had learned to speak a halting English.
|
|
|
|
It was at Para also that we engaged Gomez and Manuel, two half-breeds
|
|
from up the river, just come down with a cargo of redwood. They were
|
|
swarthy fellows, bearded and fierce, as active and wiry as panthers.
|
|
Both of them had spent their lives in those upper waters of the Amazon
|
|
which we were about to explore, and it was this recommendation
|
|
which had caused Lord John to engage them. One of them, Gomez,
|
|
had the further advantage that he could speak excellent English.
|
|
These men were willing to act as our personal servants, to cook,
|
|
to row, or to make themselves useful in any way at a payment of
|
|
fifteen dollars a month. Besides these, we had engaged three Mojo
|
|
Indians from Bolivia, who are the most skilful at fishing and boat
|
|
work of all the river tribes. The chief of these we called Mojo,
|
|
after his tribe, and the others are known as Jose and Fernando.
|
|
Three white men, then, two half-breeds, one negro, and three Indians
|
|
made up the personnel of the little expedition which lay waiting for
|
|
its instructions at Manaos before starting upon its singular quest.
|
|
|
|
At last, after a weary week, the day had come and the hour. I ask
|
|
you to picture the shaded sitting-room of the Fazenda St. Ignatio,
|
|
two miles inland from the town of Manaos. Outside lay the yellow,
|
|
brassy glare of the sunshine, with the shadows of the palm trees
|
|
as black and definite as the trees themselves. The air was calm,
|
|
full of the eternal hum of insects, a tropical chorus of many octaves,
|
|
from the deep drone of the bee to the high, keen pipe of the mosquito.
|
|
Beyond the veranda was a small cleared garden, bounded with
|
|
cactus hedges and adorned with clumps of flowering shrubs,
|
|
round which the great blue butterflies and the tiny humming-birds
|
|
fluttered and darted in crescents of sparkling light. Within we
|
|
were seated round the cane table, on which lay a sealed envelope.
|
|
Inscribed upon it, in the jagged handwriting of Professor Challenger,
|
|
were the words:--
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Instructions to Lord John Roxton and party. To be opened at Manaos
|
|
upon July 15th, at 12 o'clock precisely."
|
|
|
|
|
|
Lord John had placed his watch upon the table beside him.
|
|
|
|
"We have seven more minutes," said he. "The old dear is very precise."
|
|
|
|
Professor Summerlee gave an acid smile as he picked up the envelope
|
|
in his gaunt hand.
|
|
|
|
"What can it possibly matter whether we open it now or in seven minutes?"
|
|
said he. "It is all part and parcel of the same system of quackery
|
|
and nonsense, for which I regret to say that the writer is notorious."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, come, we must play the game accordin' to rules," said Lord John.
|
|
"It's old man Challenger's show and we are here by his good will,
|
|
so it would be rotten bad form if we didn't follow his instructions
|
|
to the letter."
|
|
|
|
"A pretty business it is!" cried the Professor, bitterly. "It struck
|
|
me as preposterous in London, but I'm bound to say that it seems
|
|
even more so upon closer acquaintance. I don't know what is
|
|
inside this envelope, but, unless it is something pretty definite,
|
|
I shall be much tempted to take the next down-river boat and catch
|
|
the Bolivia at Para. After all, I have some more responsible
|
|
work in the world than to run about disproving the assertions
|
|
of a lunatic. Now, Roxton, surely it is time."
|
|
|
|
"Time it is," said Lord John. "You can blow the whistle."
|
|
He took up the envelope and cut it with his penknife. From it he
|
|
drew a folded sheet of paper. This he carefully opened out and
|
|
flattened on the table. It was a blank sheet. He turned it over.
|
|
Again it was blank. We looked at each other in a bewildered silence,
|
|
which was broken by a discordant burst of derisive laughter from
|
|
Professor Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
"It is an open admission," he cried. "What more do you want?
|
|
The fellow is a self-confessed humbug. We have only to return home
|
|
and report him as the brazen imposter that he is."
|
|
|
|
"Invisible ink!" I suggested.
|
|
|
|
"I don't think!" said Lord Roxton, holding the paper to the light.
|
|
"No, young fellah my lad, there is no use deceiving yourself.
|
|
I'll go bail for it that nothing has ever been written upon
|
|
this paper."
|
|
|
|
"May I come in?" boomed a voice from the veranda.
|
|
|
|
The shadow of a squat figure had stolen across the patch of sunlight.
|
|
That voice! That monstrous breadth of shoulder! We sprang to
|
|
our feet with a gasp of astonishment as Challenger, in a round,
|
|
boyish straw-hat with a colored ribbon--Challenger, with his hands in
|
|
his jacket-pockets and his canvas shoes daintily pointing as he walked--
|
|
appeared in the open space before us. He threw back his head,
|
|
and there he stood in the golden glow with all his old Assyrian
|
|
luxuriance of beard, all his native insolence of drooping eyelids
|
|
and intolerant eyes.
|
|
|
|
"I fear," said he, taking out his watch, "that I am a few minutes
|
|
too late. When I gave you this envelope I must confess that I had
|
|
never intended that you should open it, for it had been my fixed
|
|
intention to be with you before the hour. The unfortunate delay can
|
|
be apportioned between a blundering pilot and an intrusive sandbank.
|
|
I fear that it has given my colleague, Professor Summerlee,
|
|
occasion to blaspheme."
|
|
|
|
"I am bound to say, sir," said Lord John, with some sternness
|
|
of voice, "that your turning up is a considerable relief to us,
|
|
for our mission seemed to have come to a premature end. Even now I
|
|
can't for the life of me understand why you should have worked it
|
|
in so extraordinary a manner."
|
|
|
|
Instead of answering, Professor Challenger entered, shook hands
|
|
with myself and Lord John, bowed with ponderous insolence
|
|
to Professor Summerlee, and sank back into a basket-chair,
|
|
which creaked and swayed beneath his weight.
|
|
|
|
"Is all ready for your journey?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"We can start to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"Then so you shall. You need no chart of directions now,
|
|
since you will have the inestimable advantage of my own guidance.
|
|
From the first I had determined that I would myself preside over
|
|
your investigation. The most elaborate charts would, as you will
|
|
readily admit, be a poor substitute for my own intelligence and advice.
|
|
As to the small ruse which I played upon you in the matter of
|
|
the envelope, it is clear that, had I told you all my intentions,
|
|
I should have been forced to resist unwelcome pressure to travel
|
|
out with you."
|
|
|
|
"Not from me, sir!" exclaimed Professor Summerlee, heartily.
|
|
"So long as there was another ship upon the Atlantic."
|
|
|
|
Challenger waved him away with his great hairy hand.
|
|
|
|
"Your common sense will, I am sure, sustain my objection and
|
|
realize that it was better that I should direct my own movements
|
|
and appear only at the exact moment when my presence was needed.
|
|
That moment has now arrived. You are in safe hands. You will not
|
|
now fail to reach your destination. From henceforth I take command
|
|
of this expedition, and I must ask you to complete your preparations
|
|
to-night, so that we may be able to make an early start in the morning.
|
|
My time is of value, and the same thing may be said, no doubt,
|
|
in a lesser degree of your own. I propose, therefore, that we
|
|
push on as rapidly as possible, until I have demonstrated what you
|
|
have come to see."
|
|
|
|
Lord John Roxton has chartered a large steam launch, the Esmeralda,
|
|
which was to carry us up the river. So far as climate goes, it was
|
|
immaterial what time we chose for our expedition, as the temperature
|
|
ranges from seventy-five to ninety degrees both summer and winter,
|
|
with no appreciable difference in heat. In moisture, however,
|
|
it is otherwise; from December to May is the period of the rains,
|
|
and during this time the river slowly rises until it attains a height
|
|
of nearly forty feet above its low-water mark. It floods the banks,
|
|
extends in great lagoons over a monstrous waste of country, and forms
|
|
a huge district, called locally the Gapo, which is for the most
|
|
part too marshy for foot-travel and too shallow for boating.
|
|
About June the waters begin to fall, and are at their lowest at October
|
|
or November. Thus our expedition was at the time of the dry season,
|
|
when the great river and its tributaries were more or less in a
|
|
normal condition.
|
|
|
|
The current of the river is a slight one, the drop being not greater
|
|
than eight inches in a mile. No stream could be more convenient
|
|
for navigation, since the prevailing wind is south-east, and sailing
|
|
boats may make a continuous progress to the Peruvian frontier,
|
|
dropping down again with the current. In our own case the excellent
|
|
engines of the Esmeralda could disregard the sluggish flow of the stream,
|
|
and we made as rapid progress as if we were navigating a stagnant lake.
|
|
For three days we steamed north-westwards up a stream which even here,
|
|
a thousand miles from its mouth, was still so enormous that from its
|
|
center the two banks were mere shadows upon the distant skyline.
|
|
On the fourth day after leaving Manaos we turned into a tributary
|
|
which at its mouth was little smaller than the main stream.
|
|
It narrowed rapidly, however, and after two more days' steaming we
|
|
reached an Indian village, where the Professor insisted that we
|
|
should land, and that the Esmeralda should be sent back to Manaos.
|
|
We should soon come upon rapids, he explained, which would make its
|
|
further use impossible. He added privately that we were now approaching
|
|
the door of the unknown country, and that the fewer whom we took
|
|
into our confidence the better it would be. To this end also he made
|
|
each of us give our word of honor that we would publish or say nothing
|
|
which would give any exact clue as to the whereabouts of our travels,
|
|
while the servants were all solemnly sworn to the same effect.
|
|
It is for this reason that I am compelled to be vague in my narrative,
|
|
and I would warn my readers that in any map or diagram which I
|
|
may give the relation of places to each other may be correct,
|
|
but the points of the compass are carefully confused, so that
|
|
in no way can it be taken as an actual guide to the country.
|
|
Professor Challenger's reasons for secrecy may be valid or not,
|
|
but we had no choice but to adopt them, for he was prepared to abandon
|
|
the whole expedition rather than modify the conditions upon which he
|
|
would guide us.
|
|
|
|
It was August 2nd when we snapped our last link with the outer world
|
|
by bidding farewell to the Esmeralda. Since then four days have passed,
|
|
during which we have engaged two large canoes from the Indians,
|
|
made of so light a material (skins over a bamboo framework)
|
|
that we should be able to carry them round any obstacle. These we
|
|
have loaded with all our effects, and have engaged two additional
|
|
Indians to help us in the navigation. I understand that they are
|
|
the very two--Ataca and Ipetu by name--who accompanied Professor
|
|
Challenger upon his previous journey. They appeared to be terrified
|
|
at the prospect of repeating it, but the chief has patriarchal
|
|
powers in these countries, and if the bargain is good in his eyes
|
|
the clansman has little choice in the matter.
|
|
|
|
So to-morrow we disappear into the unknown. This account I am
|
|
transmitting down the river by canoe, and it may be our last word
|
|
to those who are interested in our fate. I have, according to
|
|
our arrangement, addressed it to you, my dear Mr. McArdle,
|
|
and I leave it to your discretion to delete, alter, or do what you
|
|
like with it. From the assurance of Professor Challenger's manner--
|
|
and in spite of the continued scepticism of Professor Summerlee--
|
|
I have no doubt that our leader will make good his statement,
|
|
and that we are really on the eve of some most remarkable experiences.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII
|
|
|
|
"The Outlying Pickets of the New World"
|
|
|
|
Our friends at home may well rejoice with us, for we are at
|
|
our goal, and up to a point, at least, we have shown that the
|
|
statement of Professor Challenger can be verified. We have not,
|
|
it is true, ascended the plateau, but it lies before us,
|
|
and even Professor Summerlee is in a more chastened mood.
|
|
Not that he will for an instant admit that his rival could be right,
|
|
but he is less persistent in his incessant objections, and has sunk
|
|
for the most part into an observant silence. I must hark back,
|
|
however, and continue my narrative from where I dropped it.
|
|
We are sending home one of our local Indians who is injured,
|
|
and I am committing this letter to his charge, with considerable
|
|
doubts in my mind as to whether it will ever come to hand.
|
|
|
|
When I wrote last we were about to leave the Indian village
|
|
where we had been deposited by the Esmeralda. I have to begin
|
|
my report by bad news, for the first serious personal trouble
|
|
(I pass over the incessant bickerings between the Professors)
|
|
occurred this evening, and might have had a tragic ending.
|
|
I have spoken of our English-speaking half-breed, Gomez--a fine
|
|
worker and a willing fellow, but afflicted, I fancy, with the vice
|
|
of curiosity, which is common enough among such men. On the last
|
|
evening he seems to have hid himself near the hut in which we were
|
|
discussing our plans, and, being observed by our huge negro Zambo,
|
|
who is as faithful as a dog and has the hatred which all his race bear
|
|
to the half-breeds, he was dragged out and carried into our presence.
|
|
Gomez whipped out his knife, however, and but for the huge strength
|
|
of his captor, which enabled him to disarm him with one hand,
|
|
he would certainly have stabbed him. The matter has ended
|
|
in reprimands, the opponents have been compelled to shake hands,
|
|
and there is every hope that all will be well. As to the feuds
|
|
of the two learned men, they are continuous and bitter. It must
|
|
be admitted that Challenger is provocative in the last degree,
|
|
but Summerlee has an acid tongue, which makes matters worse.
|
|
Last night Challenger said that he never cared to walk on the Thames
|
|
Embankment and look up the river, as it was always sad to see one's
|
|
own eventual goal. He is convinced, of course, that he is destined
|
|
for Westminster Abbey. Summerlee rejoined, however, with a sour smile,
|
|
by saying that he understood that Millbank Prison had been pulled down.
|
|
Challenger's conceit is too colossal to allow him to be really annoyed.
|
|
He only smiled in his beard and repeated "Really! Really!"
|
|
in the pitying tone one would use to a child. Indeed, they are
|
|
children both--the one wizened and cantankerous, the other
|
|
formidable and overbearing, yet each with a brain which has put him
|
|
in the front rank of his scientific age. Brain, character, soul--
|
|
only as one sees more of life does one understand how distinct is each.
|
|
|
|
The very next day we did actually make our start upon this
|
|
remarkable expedition. We found that all our possessions fitted very
|
|
easily into the two canoes, and we divided our personnel, six in each,
|
|
taking the obvious precaution in the interests of peace of putting
|
|
one Professor into each canoe. Personally, I was with Challenger,
|
|
who was in a beatific humor, moving about as one in a silent ecstasy
|
|
and beaming benevolence from every feature. I have had some experience
|
|
of him in other moods, however, and shall be the less surprised
|
|
when the thunderstorms suddenly come up amidst the sunshine.
|
|
If it is impossible to be at your ease, it is equally impossible to be
|
|
dull in his company, for one is always in a state of half-tremulous
|
|
doubt as to what sudden turn his formidable temper may take.
|
|
|
|
For two days we made our way up a good-sized river some hundreds
|
|
of yards broad, and dark in color, but transparent, so that one
|
|
could usually see the bottom. The affluents of the Amazon are,
|
|
half of them, of this nature, while the other half are whitish
|
|
and opaque, the difference depending upon the class of country
|
|
through which they have flowed. The dark indicate vegetable decay,
|
|
while the others point to clayey soil. Twice we came across rapids,
|
|
and in each case made a portage of half a mile or so to avoid them.
|
|
The woods on either side were primeval, which are more easily
|
|
penetrated than woods of the second growth, and we had no great
|
|
difficulty in carrying our canoes through them. How shall I ever
|
|
forget the solemn mystery of it? The height of the trees and the
|
|
thickness of the boles exceeded anything which I in my town-bred life
|
|
could have imagined, shooting upwards in magnificent columns until,
|
|
at an enormous distance above our heads, we could dimly discern
|
|
the spot where they threw out their side-branches into Gothic upward
|
|
curves which coalesced to form one great matted roof of verdure,
|
|
through which only an occasional golden ray of sunshine shot downwards
|
|
to trace a thin dazzling line of light amidst the majestic obscurity.
|
|
As we walked noiselessly amid the thick, soft carpet of decaying
|
|
vegetation the hush fell upon our souls which comes upon us
|
|
in the twilight of the Abbey, and even Professor Challenger's
|
|
full-chested notes sank into a whisper. Alone, I should have
|
|
been ignorant of the names of these giant growths, but our men
|
|
of science pointed out the cedars, the great silk cotton trees,
|
|
and the redwood trees, with all that profusion of various plants
|
|
which has made this continent the chief supplier to the human race
|
|
of those gifts of Nature which depend upon the vegetable world,
|
|
while it is the most backward in those products which come
|
|
from animal life. Vivid orchids and wonderful colored lichens
|
|
smoldered upon the swarthy tree-trunks and where a wandering
|
|
shaft of light fell full upon the golden allamanda, the scarlet
|
|
star-clusters of the tacsonia, or the rich deep blue of ipomaea,
|
|
the effect was as a dream of fairyland. In these great wastes
|
|
of forest, life, which abhors darkness, struggles ever upwards
|
|
to the light. Every plant, even the smaller ones, curls and writhes
|
|
to the green surface, twining itself round its stronger and taller
|
|
brethren in the effort. Climbing plants are monstrous and luxuriant,
|
|
but others which have never been known to climb elsewhere learn the art
|
|
as an escape from that somber shadow, so that the common nettle,
|
|
the jasmine, and even the jacitara palm tree can be seen circling
|
|
the stems of the cedars and striving to reach their crowns.
|
|
Of animal life there was no movement amid the majestic vaulted aisles
|
|
which stretched from us as we walked, but a constant movement far
|
|
above our heads told of that multitudinous world of snake and monkey,
|
|
bird and sloth, which lived in the sunshine, and looked down in
|
|
wonder at our tiny, dark, stumbling figures in the obscure depths
|
|
immeasurably below them. At dawn and at sunset the howler monkeys
|
|
screamed together and the parrakeets broke into shrill chatter,
|
|
but during the hot hours of the day only the full drone of insects,
|
|
like the beat of a distant surf, filled the ear, while nothing moved
|
|
amid the solemn vistas of stupendous trunks, fading away into the
|
|
darkness which held us in. Once some bandy-legged, lurching creature,
|
|
an ant-eater or a bear, scuttled clumsily amid the shadows. It was
|
|
the only sign of earth life which I saw in this great Amazonian forest.
|
|
|
|
And yet there were indications that even human life itself was not far
|
|
from us in those mysterious recesses. On the third day out we were
|
|
aware of a singular deep throbbing in the air, rhythmic and solemn,
|
|
coming and going fitfully throughout the morning. The two boats were
|
|
paddling within a few yards of each other when first we heard it,
|
|
and our Indians remained motionless, as if they had been turned
|
|
to bronze, listening intently with expressions of terror upon their faces.
|
|
|
|
"What is it, then?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Drums," said Lord John, carelessly; "war drums. I have heard
|
|
them before."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir, war drums," said Gomez, the half-breed. "Wild Indians,
|
|
bravos, not mansos; they watch us every mile of the way; kill us
|
|
if they can."
|
|
|
|
"How can they watch us?" I asked, gazing into the dark, motionless void.
|
|
|
|
The half-breed shrugged his broad shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"The Indians know. They have their own way. They watch us.
|
|
They talk the drum talk to each other. Kill us if they can."
|
|
|
|
By the afternoon of that day--my pocket diary shows me that it
|
|
was Tuesday, August 18th--at least six or seven drums were
|
|
throbbing from various points. Sometimes they beat quickly,
|
|
sometimes slowly, sometimes in obvious question and answer,
|
|
one far to the east breaking out in a high staccato rattle,
|
|
and being followed after a pause by a deep roll from the north.
|
|
There was something indescribably nerve-shaking and menacing in that
|
|
constant mutter, which seemed to shape itself into the very syllables
|
|
of the half-breed, endlessly repeated, "We will kill you if we can.
|
|
We will kill you if we can." No one ever moved in the silent woods.
|
|
All the peace and soothing of quiet Nature lay in that dark curtain
|
|
of vegetation, but away from behind there came ever the one message
|
|
from our fellow-man. "We will kill you if we can," said the men
|
|
in the east. "We will kill you if we can," said the men in the north.
|
|
|
|
All day the drums rumbled and whispered, while their menace reflected
|
|
itself in the faces of our colored companions. Even the hardy,
|
|
swaggering half-breed seemed cowed. I learned, however, that day
|
|
once for all that both Summerlee and Challenger possessed that
|
|
highest type of bravery, the bravery of the scientific mind.
|
|
Theirs was the spirit which upheld Darwin among the gauchos
|
|
of the Argentine or Wallace among the head-hunters of Malaya.
|
|
It is decreed by a merciful Nature that the human brain cannot think
|
|
of two things simultaneously, so that if it be steeped in curiosity
|
|
as to science it has no room for merely personal considerations.
|
|
All day amid that incessant and mysterious menace our two Professors
|
|
watched every bird upon the wing, and every shrub upon the bank,
|
|
with many a sharp wordy contention, when the snarl of Summerlee came
|
|
quick upon the deep growl of Challenger, but with no more sense
|
|
of danger and no more reference to drum-beating Indians than if they
|
|
were seated together in the smoking-room of the Royal Society's
|
|
Club in St. James's Street. Once only did they condescend to
|
|
discuss them.
|
|
|
|
"Miranha or Amajuaca cannibals," said Challenger, jerking his thumb
|
|
towards the reverberating wood.
|
|
|
|
"No doubt, sir," Summerlee answered. "Like all such tribes, I shall
|
|
expect to find them of poly-synthetic speech and of Mongolian type."
|
|
|
|
"Polysynthetic certainly," said Challenger, indulgently. "I am
|
|
not aware that any other type of language exists in this continent,
|
|
and I have notes of more than a hundred. The Mongolian theory I
|
|
regard with deep suspicion."
|
|
|
|
"I should have thought that even a limited knowledge of comparative
|
|
anatomy would have helped to verify it," said Summerlee, bitterly.
|
|
|
|
Challenger thrust out his aggressive chin until he was all beard and
|
|
hat-rim. "No doubt, sir, a limited knowledge would have that effect.
|
|
When one's knowledge is exhaustive, one comes to other conclusions."
|
|
They glared at each other in mutual defiance, while all round rose
|
|
the distant whisper, "We will kill you--we will kill you if we can."
|
|
|
|
That night we moored our canoes with heavy stones for anchors in the
|
|
center of the stream, and made every preparation for a possible attack.
|
|
Nothing came, however, and with the dawn we pushed upon our way,
|
|
the drum-beating dying out behind us. About three o'clock in
|
|
the afternoon we came to a very steep rapid, more than a mile long--
|
|
the very one in which Professor Challenger had suffered disaster
|
|
upon his first journey. I confess that the sight of it consoled me,
|
|
for it was really the first direct corroboration, slight as it was,
|
|
of the truth of his story. The Indians carried first our canoes
|
|
and then our stores through the brushwood, which is very thick
|
|
at this point, while we four whites, our rifles on our shoulders,
|
|
walked between them and any danger coming from the woods.
|
|
Before evening we had successfully passed the rapids, and made our
|
|
way some ten miles above them, where we anchored for the night.
|
|
At this point I reckoned that we had come not less than a hundred miles
|
|
up the tributary from the main stream.
|
|
|
|
It was in the early forenoon of the next day that we made
|
|
the great departure. Since dawn Professor Challenger had been
|
|
acutely uneasy, continually scanning each bank of the river.
|
|
Suddenly he gave an exclamation of satisfaction and pointed to a
|
|
single tree, which projected at a peculiar angle over the side of the stream.
|
|
|
|
"What do you make of that?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"It is surely an Assai palm," said Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
"Exactly. It was an Assai palm which I took for my landmark.
|
|
The secret opening is half a mile onwards upon the other side
|
|
of the river. There is no break in the trees. That is the wonder
|
|
and the mystery of it. There where you see light-green rushes instead
|
|
of dark-green undergrowth, there between the great cotton woods,
|
|
that is my private gate into the unknown. Push through, and you
|
|
will understand."
|
|
|
|
It was indeed a wonderful place. Having reached the spot marked
|
|
by a line of light-green rushes, we poled out two canoes through them
|
|
for some hundreds of yards, and eventually emerged into a placid and
|
|
shallow stream, running clear and transparent over a sandy bottom.
|
|
It may have been twenty yards across, and was banked in on each
|
|
side by most luxuriant vegetation. No one who had not observed
|
|
that for a short distance reeds had taken the place of shrubs,
|
|
could possibly have guessed the existence of such a stream or dreamed
|
|
of the fairyland beyond.
|
|
|
|
For a fairyland it was--the most wonderful that the imagination of man
|
|
could conceive. The thick vegetation met overhead, interlacing into
|
|
a natural pergola, and through this tunnel of verdure in a golden
|
|
twilight flowed the green, pellucid river, beautiful in itself,
|
|
but marvelous from the strange tints thrown by the vivid light
|
|
from above filtered and tempered in its fall. Clear as crystal,
|
|
motionless as a sheet of glass, green as the edge of an iceberg,
|
|
it stretched in front of us under its leafy archway, every stroke
|
|
of our paddles sending a thousand ripples across its shining surface.
|
|
It was a fitting avenue to a land of wonders. All sign of the Indians
|
|
had passed away, but animal life was more frequent, and the tameness
|
|
of the creatures showed that they knew nothing of the hunter.
|
|
Fuzzy little black-velvet monkeys, with snow-white teeth and gleaming,
|
|
mocking eyes, chattered at us as we passed. With a dull,
|
|
heavy splash an occasional cayman plunged in from the bank.
|
|
Once a dark, clumsy tapir stared at us from a gap in the bushes,
|
|
and then lumbered away through the forest; once, too, the yellow,
|
|
sinuous form of a great puma whisked amid the brushwood, and its green,
|
|
baleful eyes glared hatred at us over its tawny shoulder. Bird life
|
|
was abundant, especially the wading birds, stork, heron, and ibis
|
|
gathering in little groups, blue, scarlet, and white, upon every
|
|
log which jutted from the bank, while beneath us the crystal water
|
|
was alive with fish of every shape and color.
|
|
|
|
For three days we made our way up this tunnel of hazy green sunshine.
|
|
On the longer stretches one could hardly tell as one looked ahead where
|
|
the distant green water ended and the distant green archway began.
|
|
The deep peace of this strange waterway was unbroken by any sign
|
|
of man.
|
|
|
|
"No Indian here. Too much afraid. Curupuri," said Gomez.
|
|
|
|
"Curupuri is the spirit of the woods," Lord John explained.
|
|
"It's a name for any kind of devil. The poor beggars think that
|
|
there is something fearsome in this direction, and therefore they
|
|
avoid it."
|
|
|
|
On the third day it became evident that our journey in the canoes
|
|
could not last much longer, for the stream was rapidly growing
|
|
more shallow. Twice in as many hours we stuck upon the bottom.
|
|
Finally we pulled the boats up among the brushwood and spent the night
|
|
on the bank of the river. In the morning Lord John and I made our
|
|
way for a couple of miles through the forest, keeping parallel with
|
|
the stream; but as it grew ever shallower we returned and reported,
|
|
what Professor Challenger had already suspected, that we had
|
|
reached the highest point to which the canoes could be brought.
|
|
We drew them up, therefore, and concealed them among the bushes,
|
|
blazing a tree with our axes, so that we should find them again.
|
|
Then we distributed the various burdens among us--guns, ammunition, food,
|
|
a tent, blankets, and the rest--and, shouldering our packages,
|
|
we set forth upon the more laborious stage of our journey.
|
|
|
|
An unfortunate quarrel between our pepper-pots marked the outset
|
|
of our new stage. Challenger had from the moment of joining
|
|
us issued directions to the whole party, much to the evident
|
|
discontent of Summerlee. Now, upon his assigning some duty
|
|
to his fellow-Professor (it was only the carrying of an aneroid
|
|
barometer), the matter suddenly came to a head.
|
|
|
|
"May I ask, sir," said Summerlee, with vicious calm, "in what
|
|
capacity you take it upon yourself to issue these orders?"
|
|
|
|
Challenger glared and bristled.
|
|
|
|
"I do it, Professor Summerlee, as leader of this expedition."
|
|
|
|
"I am compelled to tell you, sir, that I do not recognize you
|
|
in that capacity."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed!" Challenger bowed with unwieldy sarcasm. "Perhaps you
|
|
would define my exact position."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir. You are a man whose veracity is upon trial, and this
|
|
committee is here to try it. You walk, sir, with your judges."
|
|
|
|
"Dear me!" said Challenger, seating himself on the side of one
|
|
of the canoes. "In that case you will, of course, go on your way,
|
|
and I will follow at my leisure. If I am not the leader you cannot
|
|
expect me to lead."
|
|
|
|
Thank heaven that there were two sane men--Lord John Roxton and myself--
|
|
to prevent the petulance and folly of our learned Professors from
|
|
sending us back empty-handed to London. Such arguing and pleading
|
|
and explaining before we could get them mollified! Then at
|
|
last Summerlee, with his sneer and his pipe, would move forwards,
|
|
and Challenger would come rolling and grumbling after. By some
|
|
good fortune we discovered about this time that both our savants
|
|
had the very poorest opinion of Dr. Illingworth of Edinburgh.
|
|
Thenceforward that was our one safety, and every strained situation
|
|
was relieved by our introducing the name of the Scotch zoologist,
|
|
when both our Professors would form a temporary alliance and friendship
|
|
in their detestation and abuse of this common rival.
|
|
|
|
Advancing in single file along the bank of the stream, we soon found
|
|
that it narrowed down to a mere brook, and finally that it lost
|
|
itself in a great green morass of sponge-like mosses, into which we
|
|
sank up to our knees. The place was horribly haunted by clouds
|
|
of mosquitoes and every form of flying pest, so we were glad
|
|
to find solid ground again and to make a circuit among the trees,
|
|
which enabled us to outflank this pestilent morass, which droned
|
|
like an organ in the distance, so loud was it with insect life.
|
|
|
|
On the second day after leaving our canoes we found that the whole
|
|
character of the country changed. Our road was persistently upwards,
|
|
and as we ascended the woods became thinner and lost their
|
|
tropical luxuriance. The huge trees of the alluvial Amazonian plain
|
|
gave place to the Phoenix and coco palms, growing in scattered clumps,
|
|
with thick brushwood between. In the damper hollows the Mauritia
|
|
palms threw out their graceful drooping fronds. We traveled entirely
|
|
by compass, and once or twice there were differences of opinion
|
|
between Challenger and the two Indians, when, to quote the Professor's
|
|
indignant words, the whole party agreed to "trust the fallacious
|
|
instincts of undeveloped savages rather than the highest product
|
|
of modern European culture." That we were justified in doing so was
|
|
shown upon the third day, when Challenger admitted that he recognized
|
|
several landmarks of his former journey, and in one spot we actually
|
|
came upon four fire-blackened stones, which must have marked a camping-place.
|
|
|
|
The road still ascended, and we crossed a rock-studded slope
|
|
which took two days to traverse. The vegetation had again changed,
|
|
and only the vegetable ivory tree remained, with a great profusion
|
|
of wonderful orchids, among which I learned to recognize the rare
|
|
Nuttonia Vexillaria and the glorious pink and scarlet blossoms of
|
|
Cattleya and odontoglossum. Occasional brooks with pebbly bottoms
|
|
and fern-draped banks gurgled down the shallow gorges in the hill,
|
|
and offered good camping-grounds every evening on the banks of
|
|
some rock-studded pool, where swarms of little blue-backed fish,
|
|
about the size and shape of English trout, gave us a delicious supper.
|
|
|
|
On the ninth day after leaving the canoes, having done, as I reckon,
|
|
about a hundred and twenty miles, we began to emerge from the trees,
|
|
which had grown smaller until they were mere shrubs. Their place
|
|
was taken by an immense wilderness of bamboo, which grew so thickly
|
|
that we could only penetrate it by cutting a pathway with the machetes
|
|
and billhooks of the Indians. It took us a long day, traveling from
|
|
seven in the morning till eight at night, with only two breaks of one
|
|
hour each, to get through this obstacle. Anything more monotonous
|
|
and wearying could not be imagined, for, even at the most open places,
|
|
I could not see more than ten or twelve yards, while usually my vision
|
|
was limited to the back of Lord John's cotton jacket in front of me,
|
|
and to the yellow wall within a foot of me on either side. From above
|
|
came one thin knife-edge of sunshine, and fifteen feet over our heads
|
|
one saw the tops of the reeds swaying against the deep blue sky.
|
|
I do not know what kind of creatures inhabit such a thicket,
|
|
but several times we heard the plunging of large, heavy animals quite
|
|
close to us. From their sounds Lord John judged them to be some form
|
|
of wild cattle. Just as night fell we cleared the belt of bamboos,
|
|
and at once formed our camp, exhausted by the interminable day.
|
|
|
|
Early next morning we were again afoot, and found that the character
|
|
of the country had changed once again. Behind us was the wall
|
|
of bamboo, as definite as if it marked the course of a river.
|
|
In front was an open plain, sloping slightly upwards and dotted
|
|
with clumps of tree-ferns, the whole curving before us until it
|
|
ended in a long, whale-backed ridge. This we reached about midday,
|
|
only to find a shallow valley beyond, rising once again into a
|
|
gentle incline which led to a low, rounded sky-line. It was here,
|
|
while we crossed the first of these hills, that an incident occurred
|
|
which may or may not have been important.
|
|
|
|
Professor Challenger, who with the two local Indians was in the van
|
|
of the party, stopped suddenly and pointed excitedly to the right.
|
|
As he did so we saw, at the distance of a mile or so, something which
|
|
appeared to be a huge gray bird flap slowly up from the ground
|
|
and skim smoothly off, flying very low and straight, until it
|
|
was lost among the tree-ferns.
|
|
|
|
"Did you see it?" cried Challenger, in exultation. "Summerlee, did
|
|
you see it?"
|
|
|
|
His colleague was staring at the spot where the creature had disappeared.
|
|
|
|
"What do you claim that it was?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"To the best of my belief, a pterodactyl."
|
|
|
|
Summerlee burst into derisive laughter "A pter-fiddlestick!" said he.
|
|
"It was a stork, if ever I saw one."
|
|
|
|
Challenger was too furious to speak. He simply swung his pack upon
|
|
his back and continued upon his march. Lord John came abreast
|
|
of me, however, and his face was more grave than was his wont.
|
|
He had his Zeiss glasses in his hand.
|
|
|
|
"I focused it before it got over the trees," said he. "I won't
|
|
undertake to say what it was, but I'll risk my reputation as a sportsman
|
|
that it wasn't any bird that ever I clapped eyes on in my life."
|
|
|
|
So there the matter stands. Are we really just at the edge
|
|
of the unknown, encountering the outlying pickets of this lost
|
|
world of which our leader speaks? I give you the incident as it
|
|
occurred and you will know as much as I do. It stands alone,
|
|
for we saw nothing more which could be called remarkable.
|
|
|
|
And now, my readers, if ever I have any, I have brought you up the
|
|
broad river, and through the screen of rushes, and down the green tunnel,
|
|
and up the long slope of palm trees, and through the bamboo brake,
|
|
and across the plain of tree-ferns. At last our destination lay
|
|
in full sight of us. When we had crossed the second ridge we saw
|
|
before us an irregular, palm-studded plain, and then the line of
|
|
high red cliffs which I have seen in the picture. There it lies,
|
|
even as I write, and there can be no question that it is the same.
|
|
At the nearest point it is about seven miles from our present camp,
|
|
and it curves away, stretching as far as I can see. Challenger struts
|
|
about like a prize peacock, and Summerlee is silent, but still sceptical.
|
|
Another day should bring some of our doubts to an end. Meanwhile, as Jose,
|
|
whose arm was pierced by a broken bamboo, insists upon returning,
|
|
I send this letter back in his charge, and only hope that it may
|
|
eventually come to hand. I will write again as the occasion serves.
|
|
I have enclosed with this a rough chart of our journey, which may
|
|
have the effect of making the account rather easier to understand.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX
|
|
|
|
"Who could have Foreseen it?"
|
|
|
|
A dreadful thing has happened to us. Who could have foreseen it?
|
|
I cannot foresee any end to our troubles. It may be that we are
|
|
condemned to spend our whole lives in this strange, inaccessible place.
|
|
I am still so confused that I can hardly think clearly of the facts
|
|
of the present or of the chances of the future. To my astounded
|
|
senses the one seems most terrible and the other as black as night.
|
|
|
|
No men have ever found themselves in a worse position; nor is there
|
|
any use in disclosing to you our exact geographical situation and
|
|
asking our friends for a relief party. Even if they could send one,
|
|
our fate will in all human probability be decided long before it
|
|
could arrive in South America.
|
|
|
|
We are, in truth, as far from any human aid as if we were in
|
|
the moon. If we are to win through, it is only our own qualities
|
|
which can save us. I have as companions three remarkable men,
|
|
men of great brain-power and of unshaken courage. There lies
|
|
our one and only hope. It is only when I look upon the untroubled
|
|
faces of my comrades that I see some glimmer through the darkness.
|
|
Outwardly I trust that I appear as unconcerned as they. Inwardly I
|
|
am filled with apprehension.
|
|
|
|
Let me give you, with as much detail as I can, the sequence
|
|
of events which have led us to this catastrophe.
|
|
|
|
When I finished my last letter I stated that we were within seven
|
|
miles from an enormous line of ruddy cliffs, which encircled,
|
|
beyond all doubt, the plateau of which Professor Challenger spoke.
|
|
Their height, as we approached them, seemed to me in some places
|
|
to be greater than he had stated--running up in parts to at least
|
|
a thousand feet--and they were curiously striated, in a manner
|
|
which is, I believe, characteristic of basaltic upheavals.
|
|
Something of the sort is to be seen in Salisbury Crags at Edinburgh.
|
|
The summit showed every sign of a luxuriant vegetation, with bushes
|
|
near the edge, and farther back many high trees. There was no
|
|
indication of any life that we could see.
|
|
|
|
That night we pitched our camp immediately under the cliff--
|
|
a most wild and desolate spot. The crags above us were not
|
|
merely perpendicular, but curved outwards at the top, so that ascent
|
|
was out of the question. Close to us was the high thin pinnacle
|
|
of rock which I believe I mentioned earlier in this narrative.
|
|
It is like a broad red church spire, the top of it being level
|
|
with the plateau, but a great chasm gaping between. On the summit
|
|
of it there grew one high tree. Both pinnacle and cliff were
|
|
comparatively low--some five or six hundred feet, I should think.
|
|
|
|
"It was on that," said Professor Challenger, pointing to this tree,
|
|
"that the pterodactyl was perched. I climbed half-way up the rock
|
|
before I shot him. I am inclined to think that a good mountaineer
|
|
like myself could ascend the rock to the top, though he would,
|
|
of course, be no nearer to the plateau when he had done so."
|
|
|
|
As Challenger spoke of his pterodactyl I glanced at Professor Summerlee,
|
|
and for the first time I seemed to see some signs of a dawning
|
|
credulity and repentance. There was no sneer upon his thin lips, but,
|
|
on the contrary, a gray, drawn look of excitement and amazement.
|
|
Challenger saw it, too, and reveled in the first taste of victory.
|
|
|
|
"Of course," said he, with his clumsy and ponderous sarcasm,
|
|
"Professor Summerlee will understand that when I speak of a pterodactyl
|
|
I mean a stork--only it is the kind of stork which has no feathers,
|
|
a leathery skin, membranous wings, and teeth in its jaws." He grinned
|
|
and blinked and bowed until his colleague turned and walked away.
|
|
|
|
In the morning, after a frugal breakfast of coffee and manioc--
|
|
we had to be economical of our stores--we held a council of war
|
|
as to the best method of ascending to the plateau above us.
|
|
|
|
Challenger presided with a solemnity as if he were the Lord
|
|
Chief Justice on the Bench. Picture him seated upon a rock,
|
|
his absurd boyish straw hat tilted on the back of his head,
|
|
his supercilious eyes dominating us from under his drooping lids,
|
|
his great black beard wagging as he slowly defined our present
|
|
situation and our future movements.
|
|
|
|
Beneath him you might have seen the three of us--myself, sunburnt,
|
|
young, and vigorous after our open-air tramp; Summerlee, solemn but
|
|
still critical, behind his eternal pipe; Lord John, as keen
|
|
as a razor-edge, with his supple, alert figure leaning upon
|
|
his rifle, and his eager eyes fixed eagerly upon the speaker.
|
|
Behind us were grouped the two swarthy half-breeds and the little
|
|
knot of Indians, while in front and above us towered those huge,
|
|
ruddy ribs of rocks which kept us from our goal.
|
|
|
|
"I need not say," said our leader, "that on the occasion of my last
|
|
visit I exhausted every means of climbing the cliff, and where I
|
|
failed I do not think that anyone else is likely to succeed,
|
|
for I am something of a mountaineer. I had none of the appliances
|
|
of a rock-climber with me, but I have taken the precaution to bring
|
|
them now. With their aid I am positive I could climb that detached
|
|
pinnacle to the summit; but so long as the main cliff overhangs,
|
|
it is vain to attempt ascending that. I was hurried upon my last
|
|
visit by the approach of the rainy season and by the exhaustion
|
|
of my supplies. These considerations limited my time, and I can only
|
|
claim that I have surveyed about six miles of the cliff to the east
|
|
of us, finding no possible way up. What, then, shall we now do?"
|
|
|
|
"There seems to be only one reasonable course," said Professor Summerlee.
|
|
"If you have explored the east, we should travel along the base
|
|
of the cliff to the west, and seek for a practicable point for our ascent."
|
|
|
|
"That's it," said Lord John. "The odds are that this plateau is
|
|
of no great size, and we shall travel round it until we either find
|
|
an easy way up it, or come back to the point from which we started."
|
|
|
|
"I have already explained to our young friend here," said Challenger
|
|
(he has a way of alluding to me as if I were a school child ten
|
|
years old), "that it is quite impossible that there should be
|
|
an easy way up anywhere, for the simple reason that if there
|
|
were the summit would not be isolated, and those conditions would
|
|
not obtain which have effected so singular an interference with
|
|
the general laws of survival. Yet I admit that there may very well
|
|
be places where an expert human climber may reach the summit,
|
|
and yet a cumbrous and heavy animal be unable to descend.
|
|
It is certain that there is a point where an ascent is possible."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that, sir?" asked Summerlee, sharply.
|
|
|
|
"Because my predecessor, the American Maple White, actually made
|
|
such an ascent. How otherwise could he have seen the monster
|
|
which he sketched in his notebook?"
|
|
|
|
"There you reason somewhat ahead of the proved facts," said the
|
|
stubborn Summerlee. "I admit your plateau, because I have seen it;
|
|
but I have not as yet satisfied myself that it contains any form
|
|
of life whatever."
|
|
|
|
"What you admit, sir, or what you do not admit, is really of
|
|
inconceivably small importance. I am glad to perceive that the plateau
|
|
itself has actually obtruded itself upon your intelligence."
|
|
He glanced up at it, and then, to our amazement, he sprang from
|
|
his rock, and, seizing Summerlee by the neck, he tilted his face
|
|
into the air. "Now sir!" he shouted, hoarse with excitement.
|
|
"Do I help you to realize that the plateau contains some animal life?"
|
|
|
|
I have said that a thick fringe of green overhung the edge of
|
|
the cliff. Out of this there had emerged a black, glistening object.
|
|
As it came slowly forth and overhung the chasm, we saw that it
|
|
was a very large snake with a peculiar flat, spade-like head.
|
|
It wavered and quivered above us for a minute, the morning sun
|
|
gleaming upon its sleek, sinuous coils. Then it slowly drew inwards
|
|
and disappeared.
|
|
|
|
Summerlee had been so interested that he had stood unresisting
|
|
while Challenger tilted his head into the air. Now he shook
|
|
his colleague off and came back to his dignity.
|
|
|
|
"I should be glad, Professor Challenger," said he, "if you could
|
|
see your way to make any remarks which may occur to you without
|
|
seizing me by the chin. Even the appearance of a very ordinary
|
|
rock python does not appear to justify such a liberty."
|
|
|
|
"But there is life upon the plateau all the same," his colleague
|
|
replied in triumph. "And now, having demonstrated this important
|
|
conclusion so that it is clear to anyone, however prejudiced or obtuse,
|
|
I am of opinion that we cannot do better than break up our camp
|
|
and travel to westward until we find some means of ascent."
|
|
|
|
The ground at the foot of the cliff was rocky and broken so that the going
|
|
was slow and difficult. Suddenly we came, however, upon something
|
|
which cheered our hearts. It was the site of an old encampment,
|
|
with several empty Chicago meat tins, a bottle labeled "Brandy," a broken
|
|
tin-opener, and a quantity of other travelers' debris. A crumpled,
|
|
disintegrated newspaper revealed itself as the Chicago Democrat,
|
|
though the date had been obliterated.
|
|
|
|
"Not mine," said Challenger. "It must be Maple White's."
|
|
|
|
Lord John had been gazing curiously at a great tree-fern which
|
|
overshadowed the encampment. "I say, look at this," said he.
|
|
"I believe it is meant for a sign-post."
|
|
|
|
A slip of hard wood had been nailed to the tree in such a way
|
|
as to point to the westward.
|
|
|
|
"Most certainly a sign-post," said Challenger. "What else?
|
|
Finding himself upon a dangerous errand, our pioneer has left this sign
|
|
so that any party which follows him may know the way he has taken.
|
|
Perhaps we shall come upon some other indications as we proceed."
|
|
|
|
We did indeed, but they were of a terrible and most unexpected nature.
|
|
Immediately beneath the cliff there grew a considerable patch
|
|
of high bamboo, like that which we had traversed in our journey.
|
|
Many of these stems were twenty feet high, with sharp, strong tops,
|
|
so that even as they stood they made formidable spears.
|
|
We were passing along the edge of this cover when my eye was caught
|
|
by the gleam of something white within it. Thrusting in my head
|
|
between the stems, I found myself gazing at a fleshless skull.
|
|
The whole skeleton was there, but the skull had detached itself and lay
|
|
some feet nearer to the open.
|
|
|
|
With a few blows from the machetes of our Indians we cleared
|
|
the spot and were able to study the details of this old tragedy.
|
|
Only a few shreds of clothes could still be distinguished, but there
|
|
were the remains of boots upon the bony feet, and it was very clear
|
|
that the dead man was a European. A gold watch by Hudson, of New York,
|
|
and a chain which held a stylographic pen, lay among the bones.
|
|
There was also a silver cigarette-case, with "J. C., from A. E. S.,"
|
|
upon the lid. The state of the metal seemed to show that the catastrophe
|
|
had occurred no great time before.
|
|
|
|
"Who can he be?" asked Lord John. "Poor devil! every bone in his
|
|
body seems to be broken."
|
|
|
|
"And the bamboo grows through his smashed ribs," said Summerlee.
|
|
"It is a fast-growing plant, but it is surely inconceivable that this
|
|
body could have been here while the canes grew to be twenty feet
|
|
in length."
|
|
|
|
"As to the man's identity," said Professor Challenger, "I have no doubt
|
|
whatever upon that point. As I made my way up the river before I
|
|
reached you at the fazenda I instituted very particular inquiries
|
|
about Maple White. At Para they knew nothing. Fortunately, I had
|
|
a definite clew, for there was a particular picture in his sketch-book
|
|
which showed him taking lunch with a certain ecclesiastic at Rosario.
|
|
This priest I was able to find, and though he proved a very
|
|
argumentative fellow, who took it absurdly amiss that I should point
|
|
out to him the corrosive effect which modern science must have upon
|
|
his beliefs, he none the less gave me some positive information.
|
|
Maple White passed Rosario four years ago, or two years before I saw
|
|
his dead body. He was not alone at the time, but there was a friend,
|
|
an American named James Colver, who remained in the boat and did
|
|
not meet this ecclesiastic. I think, therefore, that there can
|
|
be no doubt that we are now looking upon the remains of this James Colver."
|
|
|
|
"Nor," said Lord John, "is there much doubt as to how he met his death.
|
|
He has fallen or been chucked from the top, and so been impaled.
|
|
How else could he come by his broken bones, and how could he have
|
|
been stuck through by these canes with their points so high above
|
|
our heads?"
|
|
|
|
A hush came over us as we stood round these shattered remains and realized
|
|
the truth of Lord John Roxton's words. The beetling head of the cliff
|
|
projected over the cane-brake. Undoubtedly he had fallen from above.
|
|
But had he fallen? Had it been an accident? Or--already ominous
|
|
and terrible possibilities began to form round that unknown land.
|
|
|
|
We moved off in silence, and continued to coast round the line
|
|
of cliffs, which were as even and unbroken as some of those monstrous
|
|
Antarctic ice-fields which I have seen depicted as stretching
|
|
from horizon to horizon and towering high above the mast-heads
|
|
of the exploring vessel.
|
|
|
|
In five miles we saw no rift or break. And then suddenly we perceived
|
|
something which filled us with new hope. In a hollow of the rock,
|
|
protected from rain, there was drawn a rough arrow in chalk,
|
|
pointing still to the westwards.
|
|
|
|
"Maple White again," said Professor Challenger. "He had some
|
|
presentiment that worthy footsteps would follow close behind him."
|
|
|
|
"He had chalk, then?"
|
|
|
|
"A box of colored chalks was among the effects I found in his knapsack.
|
|
I remember that the white one was worn to a stump."
|
|
|
|
"That is certainly good evidence," said Summerlee. "We can only
|
|
accept his guidance and follow on to the westward."
|
|
|
|
We had proceeded some five more miles when again we saw a white
|
|
arrow upon the rocks. It was at a point where the face of the cliff
|
|
was for the first time split into a narrow cleft. Inside the cleft
|
|
was a second guidance mark, which pointed right up it with the tip
|
|
somewhat elevated, as if the spot indicated were above the level
|
|
of the ground.
|
|
|
|
It was a solemn place, for the walls were so gigantic and the slit
|
|
of blue sky so narrow and so obscured by a double fringe of verdure,
|
|
that only a dim and shadowy light penetrated to the bottom. We had
|
|
had no food for many hours, and were very weary with the stony and
|
|
irregular journey, but our nerves were too strung to allow us to halt.
|
|
We ordered the camp to be pitched, however, and, leaving the Indians
|
|
to arrange it, we four, with the two half-breeds, proceeded up
|
|
the narrow gorge.
|
|
|
|
It was not more than forty feet across at the mouth, but it rapidly
|
|
closed until it ended in an acute angle, too straight and smooth
|
|
for an ascent. Certainly it was not this which our pioneer had
|
|
attempted to indicate. We made our way back--the whole gorge was not
|
|
more than a quarter of a mile deep--and then suddenly the quick eyes
|
|
of Lord John fell upon what we were seeking. High up above our heads,
|
|
amid the dark shadows, there was one circle of deeper gloom.
|
|
Surely it could only be the opening of a cave.
|
|
|
|
The base of the cliff was heaped with loose stones at the spot,
|
|
and it was not difficult to clamber up. When we reached it,
|
|
all doubt was removed. Not only was it an opening into the rock,
|
|
but on the side of it there was marked once again the sign of the arrow.
|
|
Here was the point, and this the means by which Maple White and his
|
|
ill-fated comrade had made their ascent.
|
|
|
|
We were too excited to return to the camp, but must make our
|
|
first exploration at once. Lord John had an electric torch
|
|
in his knapsack, and this had to serve us as light. He advanced,
|
|
throwing his little clear circlet of yellow radiance before him,
|
|
while in single file we followed at his heels.
|
|
|
|
The cave had evidently been water-worn, the sides being smooth
|
|
and the floor covered with rounded stones. It was of such a size
|
|
that a single man could just fit through by stooping. For fifty
|
|
yards it ran almost straight into the rock, and then it ascended at
|
|
an angle of forty-five. Presently this incline became even steeper,
|
|
and we found ourselves climbing upon hands and knees among loose
|
|
rubble which slid from beneath us. Suddenly an exclamation broke
|
|
from Lord Roxton.
|
|
|
|
"It's blocked!" said he.
|
|
|
|
Clustering behind him we saw in the yellow field of light a wall
|
|
of broken basalt which extended to the ceiling.
|
|
|
|
"The roof has fallen in!"
|
|
|
|
In vain we dragged out some of the pieces. The only effect
|
|
was that the larger ones became detached and threatened to roll
|
|
down the gradient and crush us. It was evident that the obstacle
|
|
was far beyond any efforts which we could make to remove it.
|
|
The road by which Maple White had ascended was no longer available.
|
|
|
|
Too much cast down to speak, we stumbled down the dark tunnel
|
|
and made our way back to the camp.
|
|
|
|
One incident occurred, however, before we left the gorge, which is
|
|
of importance in view of what came afterwards.
|
|
|
|
We had gathered in a little group at the bottom of the chasm,
|
|
some forty feet beneath the mouth of the cave, when a huge rock
|
|
rolled suddenly downwards--and shot past us with tremendous force.
|
|
It was the narrowest escape for one or all of us. We could not
|
|
ourselves see whence the rock had come, but our half-breed servants,
|
|
who were still at the opening of the cave, said that it had flown
|
|
past them, and must therefore have fallen from the summit.
|
|
Looking upwards, we could see no sign of movement above us amidst
|
|
the green jungle which topped the cliff. There could be little doubt,
|
|
however, that the stone was aimed at us, so the incident surely
|
|
pointed to humanity--and malevolent humanity--upon the plateau.
|
|
|
|
We withdrew hurriedly from the chasm, our minds full of this new
|
|
development and its bearing upon our plans. The situation was
|
|
difficult enough before, but if the obstructions of Nature were
|
|
increased by the deliberate opposition of man, then our case was
|
|
indeed a hopeless one. And yet, as we looked up at that beautiful
|
|
fringe of verdure only a few hundreds of feet above our heads,
|
|
there was not one of us who could conceive the idea of returning
|
|
to London until we had explored it to its depths.
|
|
|
|
On discussing the situation, we determined that our best course
|
|
was to continue to coast round the plateau in the hope of finding
|
|
some other means of reaching the top. The line of cliffs, which had
|
|
decreased considerably in height, had already begun to trend from
|
|
west to north, and if we could take this as representing the arc
|
|
of a circle, the whole circumference could not be very great.
|
|
At the worst, then, we should be back in a few days at our starting-point.
|
|
|
|
We made a march that day which totaled some two-and-twenty miles,
|
|
without any change in our prospects. I may mention that our aneroid
|
|
shows us that in the continual incline which we have ascended since we
|
|
abandoned our canoes we have risen to no less than three thousand
|
|
feet above sea-level. Hence there is a considerable change both
|
|
in the temperature and in the vegetation. We have shaken off some
|
|
of that horrible insect life which is the bane of tropical travel.
|
|
A few palms still survive, and many tree-ferns, but the Amazonian trees
|
|
have been all left behind. It was pleasant to see the convolvulus,
|
|
the passion-flower, and the begonia, all reminding me of home,
|
|
here among these inhospitable rocks. There was a red begonia just
|
|
the same color as one that is kept in a pot in the window of a certain
|
|
villa in Streatham--but I am drifting into private reminiscence.
|
|
|
|
That night--I am still speaking of the first day of our circumnavigation
|
|
of the plateau--a great experience awaited us, and one which for ever
|
|
set at rest any doubt which we could have had as to the wonders so near us.
|
|
|
|
You will realize as you read it, my dear Mr. McArdle, and possibly
|
|
for the first time that the paper has not sent me on a wild-goose chase,
|
|
and that there is inconceivably fine copy waiting for the world
|
|
whenever we have the Professor's leave to make use of it. I shall
|
|
not dare to publish these articles unless I can bring back my proofs
|
|
to England, or I shall be hailed as the journalistic Munchausen
|
|
of all time. I have no doubt that you feel the same way yourself,
|
|
and that you would not care to stake the whole credit of the Gazette
|
|
upon this adventure until we can meet the chorus of criticism
|
|
and scepticism which such articles must of necessity elicit.
|
|
So this wonderful incident, which would make such a headline
|
|
for the old paper, must still wait its turn in the editorial drawer.
|
|
|
|
And yet it was all over in a flash, and there was no sequel to it,
|
|
save in our own convictions.
|
|
|
|
What occurred was this. Lord John had shot an ajouti--which is a small,
|
|
pig-like animal--and, half of it having been given to the Indians,
|
|
we were cooking the other half upon our fire. There is a chill
|
|
in the air after dark, and we had all drawn close to the blaze.
|
|
The night was moonless, but there were some stars, and one could
|
|
see for a little distance across the plain. Well, suddenly out
|
|
of the darkness, out of the night, there swooped something with
|
|
a swish like an aeroplane. The whole group of us were covered
|
|
for an instant by a canopy of leathery wings, and I had a momentary
|
|
vision of a long, snake-like neck, a fierce, red, greedy eye,
|
|
and a great snapping beak, filled, to my amazement, with little,
|
|
gleaming teeth. The next instant it was gone--and so was our dinner.
|
|
A huge black shadow, twenty feet across, skimmed up into the air;
|
|
for an instant the monster wings blotted out the stars, and then it
|
|
vanished over the brow of the cliff above us. We all sat in amazed
|
|
silence round the fire, like the heroes of Virgil when the Harpies
|
|
came down upon them. It was Summerlee who was the first to speak.
|
|
|
|
"Professor Challenger," said he, in a solemn voice, which quavered
|
|
with emotion, "I owe you an apology. Sir, I am very much in the wrong,
|
|
and I beg that you will forget what is past."
|
|
|
|
It was handsomely said, and the two men for the first time shook hands.
|
|
So much we have gained by this clear vision of our first pterodactyl.
|
|
It was worth a stolen supper to bring two such men together.
|
|
|
|
But if prehistoric life existed upon the plateau it was not superabundant,
|
|
for we had no further glimpse of it during the next three days.
|
|
During this time we traversed a barren and forbidding country,
|
|
which alternated between stony desert and desolate marshes full
|
|
of many wild-fowl, upon the north and east of the cliffs.
|
|
From that direction the place is really inaccessible, and, were it
|
|
not for a hardish ledge which runs at the very base of the precipice,
|
|
we should have had to turn back. Many times we were up to our
|
|
waists in the slime and blubber of an old, semi-tropical swamp.
|
|
To make matters worse, the place seemed to be a favorite breeding-place
|
|
of the Jaracaca snake, the most venomous and aggressive in
|
|
South America. Again and again these horrible creatures came writhing
|
|
and springing towards us across the surface of this putrid bog,
|
|
and it was only by keeping our shot-guns for ever ready that we could
|
|
feel safe from them. One funnel-shaped depression in the morass,
|
|
of a livid green in color from some lichen which festered in it,
|
|
will always remain as a nightmare memory in my mind. It seems to
|
|
have been a special nest of these vermins, and the slopes were alive
|
|
with them, all writhing in our direction, for it is a peculiarity
|
|
of the Jaracaca that he will always attack man at first sight.
|
|
There were too many for us to shoot, so we fairly took to our
|
|
heels and ran until we were exhausted. I shall always remember
|
|
as we looked back how far behind we could see the heads and necks
|
|
of our horrible pursuers rising and falling amid the reeds.
|
|
Jaracaca Swamp we named it in the map which we are constructing.
|
|
|
|
The cliffs upon the farther side had lost their ruddy tint,
|
|
being chocolate-brown in color; the vegetation was more scattered
|
|
along the top of them, and they had sunk to three or four hundred
|
|
feet in height, but in no place did we find any point where they
|
|
could be ascended. If anything, they were more impossible than at
|
|
the first point where we had met them. Their absolute steepness
|
|
is indicated in the photograph which I took over the stony desert.
|
|
|
|
"Surely," said I, as we discussed the situation, "the rain must
|
|
find its way down somehow. There are bound to be water-channels
|
|
in the rocks."
|
|
|
|
"Our young friend has glimpses of lucidity," said Professor Challenger,
|
|
patting me upon the shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"The rain must go somewhere," I repeated.
|
|
|
|
"He keeps a firm grip upon actuality. The only drawback is that
|
|
we have conclusively proved by ocular demonstration that there
|
|
are no water channels down the rocks."
|
|
|
|
"Where, then, does it go?" I persisted.
|
|
|
|
"I think it may be fairly assumed that if it does not come outwards
|
|
it must run inwards."
|
|
|
|
"Then there is a lake in the center."
|
|
|
|
"So I should suppose."
|
|
|
|
"It is more than likely that the lake may be an old crater,"
|
|
said Summerlee. "The whole formation is, of course, highly volcanic.
|
|
But, however that may be, I should expect to find the surface
|
|
of the plateau slope inwards with a considerable sheet of water
|
|
in the center, which may drain off, by some subterranean channel,
|
|
into the marshes of the Jaracaca Swamp."
|
|
|
|
"Or evaporation might preserve an equilibrium," remarked Challenger,
|
|
and the two learned men wandered off into one of their usual
|
|
scientific arguments, which were as comprehensible as Chinese
|
|
to the layman.
|
|
|
|
On the sixth day we completed our first circuit of the cliffs,
|
|
and found ourselves back at the first camp, beside the isolated
|
|
pinnacle of rock. We were a disconsolate party, for nothing could
|
|
have been more minute than our investigation, and it was absolutely
|
|
certain that there was no single point where the most active human
|
|
being could possibly hope to scale the cliff. The place which Maple
|
|
White's chalk-marks had indicated as his own means of access was
|
|
now entirely impassable.
|
|
|
|
What were we to do now? Our stores of provisions, supplemented by
|
|
our guns, were holding out well, but the day must come when they
|
|
would need replenishment. In a couple of months the rains might
|
|
be expected, and we should be washed out of our camp. The rock
|
|
was harder than marble, and any attempt at cutting a path for so
|
|
great a height was more than our time or resources would admit.
|
|
No wonder that we looked gloomily at each other that night,
|
|
and sought our blankets with hardly a word exchanged. I remember
|
|
that as I dropped off to sleep my last recollection was that
|
|
Challenger was squatting, like a monstrous bull-frog, by the fire,
|
|
his huge head in his hands, sunk apparently in the deepest thought,
|
|
and entirely oblivious to the good-night which I wished him.
|
|
|
|
But it was a very different Challenger who greeted us in the morning--
|
|
a Challenger with contentment and self-congratulation shining
|
|
from his whole person. He faced us as we assembled for breakfast
|
|
with a deprecating false modesty in his eyes, as who should say,
|
|
"I know that I deserve all that you can say, but I pray you to spare
|
|
my blushes by not saying it." His beard bristled exultantly,
|
|
his chest was thrown out, and his hand was thrust into the front
|
|
of his jacket. So, in his fancy, may he see himself sometimes,
|
|
gracing the vacant pedestal in Trafalgar Square, and adding one more
|
|
to the horrors of the London streets.
|
|
|
|
"Eureka!" he cried, his teeth shining through his beard.
|
|
"Gentlemen, you may congratulate me and we may congratulate each other.
|
|
The problem is solved."
|
|
|
|
"You have found a way up?"
|
|
|
|
"I venture to think so."
|
|
|
|
"And where?"
|
|
|
|
For answer he pointed to the spire-like pinnacle upon our right.
|
|
|
|
Our faces--or mine, at least--fell as we surveyed it. That it
|
|
could be climbed we had our companion's assurance. But a horrible
|
|
abyss lay between it and the plateau.
|
|
|
|
"We can never get across," I gasped.
|
|
|
|
"We can at least all reach the summit," said he. "When we are up
|
|
I may be able to show you that the resources of an inventive mind
|
|
are not yet exhausted."
|
|
|
|
After breakfast we unpacked the bundle in which our leader had
|
|
brought his climbing accessories. From it he took a coil of the
|
|
strongest and lightest rope, a hundred and fifty feet in length,
|
|
with climbing irons, clamps, and other devices. Lord John was an
|
|
experienced mountaineer, and Summerlee had done some rough climbing at
|
|
various times, so that I was really the novice at rock-work of the party;
|
|
but my strength and activity may have made up for my want of experience.
|
|
|
|
It was not in reality a very stiff task, though there were moments
|
|
which made my hair bristle upon my head. The first half was
|
|
perfectly easy, but from there upwards it became continually
|
|
steeper until, for the last fifty feet, we were literally clinging
|
|
with our fingers and toes to tiny ledges and crevices in the rock.
|
|
I could not have accomplished it, nor could Summerlee, if Challenger
|
|
had not gained the summit (it was extraordinary to see such activity
|
|
in so unwieldy a creature) and there fixed the rope round the trunk
|
|
of the considerable tree which grew there. With this as our support,
|
|
we were soon able to scramble up the jagged wall until we found
|
|
ourselves upon the small grassy platform, some twenty-five feet
|
|
each way, which formed the summit.
|
|
|
|
The first impression which I received when I had recovered my
|
|
breath was of the extraordinary view over the country which we
|
|
had traversed. The whole Brazilian plain seemed to lie beneath us,
|
|
extending away and away until it ended in dim blue mists upon
|
|
the farthest sky-line. In the foreground was the long slope,
|
|
strewn with rocks and dotted with tree-ferns; farther off in the
|
|
middle distance, looking over the saddle-back hill, I could just see
|
|
the yellow and green mass of bamboos through which we had passed;
|
|
and then, gradually, the vegetation increased until it formed
|
|
the huge forest which extended as far as the eyes could reach,
|
|
and for a good two thousand miles beyond.
|
|
|
|
I was still drinking in this wonderful panorama when the heavy hand
|
|
of the Professor fell upon my shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"This way, my young friend," said he; "vestigia nulla retrorsum.
|
|
Never look rearwards, but always to our glorious goal."
|
|
|
|
The level of the plateau, when I turned, was exactly that on which
|
|
we stood, and the green bank of bushes, with occasional trees, was so
|
|
near that it was difficult to realize how inaccessible it remained.
|
|
At a rough guess the gulf was forty feet across, but, so far as I
|
|
could see, it might as well have been forty miles. I placed one arm
|
|
round the trunk of the tree and leaned over the abyss. Far down
|
|
were the small dark figures of our servants, looking up at us.
|
|
The wall was absolutely precipitous, as was that which faced me.
|
|
|
|
"This is indeed curious," said the creaking voice of Professor Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
I turned, and found that he was examining with great interest the tree
|
|
to which I clung. That smooth bark and those small, ribbed leaves
|
|
seemed familiar to my eyes. "Why," I cried, "it's a beech!"
|
|
|
|
"Exactly," said Summerlee. "A fellow-countryman in a far land."
|
|
|
|
"Not only a fellow-countryman, my good sir," said Challenger,
|
|
"but also, if I may be allowed to enlarge your simile, an ally
|
|
of the first value. This beech tree will be our saviour."
|
|
|
|
"By George!" cried Lord John, "a bridge!"
|
|
|
|
"Exactly, my friends, a bridge! It is not for nothing that I
|
|
expended an hour last night in focusing my mind upon the situation.
|
|
I have some recollection of once remarking to our young friend
|
|
here that G. E. C. is at his best when his back is to the wall.
|
|
Last night you will admit that all our backs were to the wall.
|
|
But where will-power and intellect go together, there is always a way out.
|
|
A drawbridge had to be found which could be dropped across the abyss.
|
|
Behold it!"
|
|
|
|
It was certainly a brilliant idea. The tree was a good sixty feet
|
|
in height, and if it only fell the right way it would easily cross
|
|
the chasm. Challenger had slung the camp axe over his shoulder
|
|
when he ascended. Now he handed it to me.
|
|
|
|
"Our young friend has the thews and sinews," said he.
|
|
"I think he will be the most useful at this task. I must beg,
|
|
however, that you will kindly refrain from thinking for yourself,
|
|
and that you will do exactly what you are told."
|
|
|
|
Under his direction I cut such gashes in the sides of the trees as would
|
|
ensure that it should fall as we desired. It had already a strong,
|
|
natural tilt in the direction of the plateau, so that the matter
|
|
was not difficult. Finally I set to work in earnest upon the trunk,
|
|
taking turn and turn with Lord John. In a little over an hour there
|
|
was a loud crack, the tree swayed forward, and then crashed over,
|
|
burying its branches among the bushes on the farther side. The severed
|
|
trunk rolled to the very edge of our platform, and for one terrible
|
|
second we all thought it was over. It balanced itself, however,
|
|
a few inches from the edge, and there was our bridge to the unknown.
|
|
|
|
All of us, without a word, shook hands with Professor Challenger,
|
|
who raised his straw hat and bowed deeply to each in turn.
|
|
|
|
"I claim the honor," said he, "to be the first to cross to the unknown land--
|
|
a fitting subject, no doubt, for some future historical painting."
|
|
|
|
He had approached the bridge when Lord John laid his hand upon
|
|
his coat.
|
|
|
|
"My dear chap," said he, "I really cannot allow it."
|
|
|
|
"Cannot allow it, sir!" The head went back and the beard forward.
|
|
|
|
"When it is a matter of science, don't you know, I follow your
|
|
lead because you are by way of bein' a man of science. But it's
|
|
up to you to follow me when you come into my department."
|
|
|
|
"Your department, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"We all have our professions, and soldierin' is mine. We are,
|
|
accordin' to my ideas, invadin' a new country, which may or may
|
|
not be chock-full of enemies of sorts. To barge blindly into it
|
|
for want of a little common sense and patience isn't my notion of management."
|
|
|
|
The remonstrance was too reasonable to be disregarded.
|
|
Challenger tossed his head and shrugged his heavy shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"Well, sir, what do you propose?"
|
|
|
|
"For all I know there may be a tribe of cannibals waitin' for lunch-time
|
|
among those very bushes," said Lord John, looking across the bridge.
|
|
"It's better to learn wisdom before you get into a cookin'-pot; so we
|
|
will content ourselves with hopin' that there is no trouble waitin'
|
|
for us, and at the same time we will act as if there were.
|
|
Malone and I will go down again, therefore, and we will fetch up
|
|
the four rifles, together with Gomez and the other. One man can
|
|
then go across and the rest will cover him with guns, until he sees
|
|
that it is safe for the whole crowd to come along."
|
|
|
|
Challenger sat down upon the cut stump and groaned his impatience;
|
|
but Summerlee and I were of one mind that Lord John was our leader
|
|
when such practical details were in question. The climb was a more
|
|
simple thing now that the rope dangled down the face of the worst
|
|
part of the ascent. Within an hour we had brought up the rifles
|
|
and a shot-gun. The half-breeds had ascended also, and under Lord
|
|
John's orders they had carried up a bale of provisions in case
|
|
our first exploration should be a long one. We had each bandoliers
|
|
of cartridges.
|
|
|
|
"Now, Challenger, if you really insist upon being the first man in,"
|
|
said Lord John, when every preparation was complete.
|
|
|
|
"I am much indebted to you for your gracious permission,"
|
|
said the angry Professor; for never was a man so intolerant of
|
|
every form of authority. "Since you are good enough to allow it,
|
|
I shall most certainly take it upon myself to act as pioneer upon
|
|
this occasion."
|
|
|
|
Seating himself with a leg overhanging the abyss on each side,
|
|
and his hatchet slung upon his back, Challenger hopped his way
|
|
across the trunk and was soon at the other side. He clambered up
|
|
and waved his arms in the air.
|
|
|
|
"At last!" he cried; "at last!"
|
|
|
|
I gazed anxiously at him, with a vague expectation that some terrible
|
|
fate would dart at him from the curtain of green behind him.
|
|
But all was quiet, save that a strange, many-colored bird flew up
|
|
from under his feet and vanished among the trees.
|
|
|
|
Summerlee was the second. His wiry energy is wonderful in so frail
|
|
a frame. He insisted upon having two rifles slung upon his back,
|
|
so that both Professors were armed when he had made his transit.
|
|
I came next, and tried hard not to look down into the horrible
|
|
gulf over which I was passing. Summerlee held out the butt-end
|
|
of his rifle, and an instant later I was able to grasp his hand.
|
|
As to Lord John, he walked across--actually walked without support!
|
|
He must have nerves of iron.
|
|
|
|
And there we were, the four of us, upon the dreamland, the lost world,
|
|
of Maple White. To all of us it seemed the moment of our supreme triumph.
|
|
Who could have guessed that it was the prelude to our supreme disaster?
|
|
Let me say in a few words how the crushing blow fell upon us.
|
|
|
|
We had turned away from the edge, and had penetrated about fifty
|
|
yards of close brushwood, when there came a frightful rending crash
|
|
from behind us. With one impulse we rushed back the way that we
|
|
had come. The bridge was gone!
|
|
|
|
Far down at the base of the cliff I saw, as I looked over, a tangled
|
|
mass of branches and splintered trunk. It was our beech tree.
|
|
Had the edge of the platform crumbled and let it through? For a moment
|
|
this explanation was in all our minds. The next, from the farther
|
|
side of the rocky pinnacle before us a swarthy face, the face of Gomez
|
|
the half-breed, was slowly protruded. Yes, it was Gomez, but no
|
|
longer the Gomez of the demure smile and the mask-like expression.
|
|
Here was a face with flashing eyes and distorted features, a face
|
|
convulsed with hatred and with the mad joy of gratified revenge.
|
|
|
|
"Lord Roxton!" he shouted. "Lord John Roxton!"
|
|
|
|
"Well," said our companion, "here I am."
|
|
|
|
A shriek of laughter came across the abyss.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, there you are, you English dog, and there you will remain!
|
|
I have waited and waited, and now has come my chance. You found it
|
|
hard to get up; you will find it harder to get down. You cursed fools,
|
|
you are trapped, every one of you!"
|
|
|
|
We were too astounded to speak. We could only stand there staring
|
|
in amazement. A great broken bough upon the grass showed whence he
|
|
had gained his leverage to tilt over our bridge. The face had vanished,
|
|
but presently it was up again, more frantic than before.
|
|
|
|
"We nearly killed you with a stone at the cave," he cried; "but this
|
|
is better. It is slower and more terrible. Your bones will whiten
|
|
up there, and none will know where you lie or come to cover them.
|
|
As you lie dying, think of Lopez, whom you shot five years ago on
|
|
the Putomayo River. I am his brother, and, come what will I will
|
|
die happy now, for his memory has been avenged." A furious hand
|
|
was shaken at us, and then all was quiet.
|
|
|
|
Had the half-breed simply wrought his vengeance and then escaped,
|
|
all might have been well with him. It was that foolish, irresistible
|
|
Latin impulse to be dramatic which brought his own downfall.
|
|
Roxton, the man who had earned himself the name of the Flail of the Lord
|
|
through three countries, was not one who could be safely taunted.
|
|
The half-breed was descending on the farther side of the pinnacle;
|
|
but before he could reach the ground Lord John had run along the edge
|
|
of the plateau and gained a point from which he could see his man.
|
|
There was a single crack of his rifle, and, though we saw nothing,
|
|
we heard the scream and then the distant thud of the falling body.
|
|
Roxton came back to us with a face of granite.
|
|
|
|
"I have been a blind simpleton," said he, bitterly, "It's my
|
|
folly that has brought you all into this trouble. I should have
|
|
remembered that these people have long memories for blood-feuds,
|
|
and have been more upon my guard."
|
|
|
|
"What about the other one? It took two of them to lever that tree
|
|
over the edge."
|
|
|
|
"I could have shot him, but I let him go. He may have had no part
|
|
in it. Perhaps it would have been better if I had killed him,
|
|
for he must, as you say, have lent a hand."
|
|
|
|
Now that we had the clue to his action, each of us could cast back
|
|
and remember some sinister act upon the part of the half-breed--
|
|
his constant desire to know our plans, his arrest outside our tent
|
|
when he was over-hearing them, the furtive looks of hatred which
|
|
from time to time one or other of us had surprised. We were still
|
|
discussing it, endeavoring to adjust our minds to these new conditions,
|
|
when a singular scene in the plain below arrested our attention.
|
|
|
|
A man in white clothes, who could only be the surviving half-breed,
|
|
was running as one does run when Death is the pacemaker.
|
|
Behind him, only a few yards in his rear, bounded the huge ebony
|
|
figure of Zambo, our devoted negro. Even as we looked, he sprang
|
|
upon the back of the fugitive and flung his arms round his neck.
|
|
They rolled on the ground together. An instant afterwards Zambo rose,
|
|
looked at the prostrate man, and then, waving his hand joyously to us,
|
|
came running in our direction. The white figure lay motionless in
|
|
the middle of the great plain.
|
|
|
|
Our two traitors had been destroyed, but the mischief that they
|
|
had done lived after them. By no possible means could we get back
|
|
to the pinnacle. We had been natives of the world; now we were
|
|
natives of the plateau. The two things were separate and apart.
|
|
There was the plain which led to the canoes. Yonder, beyond the violet,
|
|
hazy horizon, was the stream which led back to civilization.
|
|
But the link between was missing. No human ingenuity could suggest
|
|
a means of bridging the chasm which yawned between ourselves
|
|
and our past lives. One instant had altered the whole conditions
|
|
of our existence.
|
|
|
|
It was at such a moment that I learned the stuff of which my three
|
|
comrades were composed. They were grave, it is true, and thoughtful,
|
|
but of an invincible serenity. For the moment we could only sit
|
|
among the bushes in patience and wait the coming of Zambo.
|
|
Presently his honest black face topped the rocks and his Herculean
|
|
figure emerged upon the top of the pinnacle.
|
|
|
|
"What I do now?" he cried. "You tell me and I do it."
|
|
|
|
It was a question which it was easier to ask than to answer. One thing
|
|
only was clear. He was our one trusty link with the outside world.
|
|
On no account must he leave us.
|
|
|
|
"No no!" he cried. "I not leave you. Whatever come, you always
|
|
find me here. But no able to keep Indians. Already they say
|
|
too much Curupuri live on this place, and they go home. Now you
|
|
leave them me no able to keep them."
|
|
|
|
It was a fact that our Indians had shown in many ways of late
|
|
that they were weary of their journey and anxious to return.
|
|
We realized that Zambo spoke the truth, and that it would be
|
|
impossible for him to keep them.
|
|
|
|
"Make them wait till to-morrow, Zambo," I shouted; "then I can send
|
|
letter back by them."
|
|
|
|
"Very good, sarr! I promise they wait till to-morrow, said the negro.
|
|
"But what I do for you now?"
|
|
|
|
There was plenty for him to do, and admirably the faithful fellow
|
|
did it. First of all, under our directions, he undid the rope
|
|
from the tree-stump and threw one end of it across to us.
|
|
It was not thicker than a clothes-line, but it was of great strength,
|
|
and though we could not make a bridge of it, we might well find it
|
|
invaluable if we had any climbing to do. He then fastened his end
|
|
of the rope to the package of supplies which had been carried up,
|
|
and we were able to drag it across. This gave us the means
|
|
of life for at least a week, even if we found nothing else.
|
|
Finally he descended and carried up two other packets of mixed goods--
|
|
a box of ammunition and a number of other things, all of which we
|
|
got across by throwing our rope to him and hauling it back.
|
|
It was evening when he at last climbed down, with a final assurance
|
|
that he would keep the Indians till next morning.
|
|
|
|
And so it is that I have spent nearly the whole of this our first
|
|
night upon the plateau writing up our experiences by the light
|
|
of a single candle-lantern.
|
|
|
|
We supped and camped at the very edge of the cliff, quenching our
|
|
thirst with two bottles of Apollinaris which were in one of the cases.
|
|
It is vital to us to find water, but I think even Lord John himself
|
|
had had adventures enough for one day, and none of us felt inclined
|
|
to make the first push into the unknown. We forbore to light
|
|
a fire or to make any unnecessary sound.
|
|
|
|
To-morrow (or to-day, rather, for it is already dawn as I write)
|
|
we shall make our first venture into this strange land. When I shall
|
|
be able to write again--or if I ever shall write again--I know not.
|
|
Meanwhile, I can see that the Indians are still in their place,
|
|
and I am sure that the faithful Zambo will be here presently to get
|
|
my letter. I only trust that it will come to hand.
|
|
|
|
|
|
P.S.--The more I think the more desperate does our position seem.
|
|
I see no possible hope of our return. If there were a high tree
|
|
near the edge of the plateau we might drop a return bridge across,
|
|
but there is none within fifty yards. Our united strength could not
|
|
carry a trunk which would serve our purpose. The rope, of course,
|
|
is far too short that we could descend by it. No, our position
|
|
is hopeless--hopeless!
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X
|
|
|
|
"The most Wonderful Things have Happened"
|
|
|
|
The most wonderful things have happened and are continually happening
|
|
to us. All the paper that I possess consists of five old note-books
|
|
and a lot of scraps, and I have only the one stylographic pencil;
|
|
but so long as I can move my hand I will continue to set down our
|
|
experiences and impressions, for, since we are the only men of the whole
|
|
human race to see such things, it is of enormous importance that I
|
|
should record them whilst they are fresh in my memory and before
|
|
that fate which seems to be constantly impending does actually
|
|
overtake us. Whether Zambo can at last take these letters to the river,
|
|
or whether I shall myself in some miraculous way carry them back
|
|
with me, or, finally, whether some daring explorer, coming upon
|
|
our tracks with the advantage, perhaps, of a perfected monoplane,
|
|
should find this bundle of manuscript, in any case I can see that
|
|
what I am writing is destined to immortality as a classic of true adventure.
|
|
|
|
On the morning after our being trapped upon the plateau by
|
|
the villainous Gomez we began a new stage in our experiences.
|
|
The first incident in it was not such as to give me a very favorable
|
|
opinion of the place to which we had wandered. As I roused myself
|
|
from a short nap after day had dawned, my eyes fell upon a most
|
|
singular appearance upon my own leg. My trouser had slipped up,
|
|
exposing a few inches of my skin above my sock. On this there
|
|
rested a large, purplish grape. Astonished at the sight,
|
|
I leaned forward to pick it off, when, to my horror, it burst
|
|
between my finger and thumb, squirting blood in every direction.
|
|
My cry of disgust had brought the two professors to my side.
|
|
|
|
"Most interesting," said Summerlee, bending over my shin.
|
|
"An enormous blood-tick, as yet, I believe, unclassified."
|
|
|
|
"The first-fruits of our labors," said Challenger in his booming,
|
|
pedantic fashion. "We cannot do less than call it Ixodes Maloni.
|
|
The very small inconvenience of being bitten, my young friend,
|
|
cannot, I am sure, weigh with you as against the glorious privilege
|
|
of having your name inscribed in the deathless roll of zoology.
|
|
Unhappily you have crushed this fine specimen at the moment
|
|
of satiation."
|
|
|
|
"Filthy vermin!" I cried.
|
|
|
|
Professor Challenger raised his great eyebrows in protest,
|
|
and placed a soothing paw upon my shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"You should cultivate the scientific eye and the detached
|
|
scientific mind," said he. "To a man of philosophic temperament
|
|
like myself the blood-tick, with its lancet-like proboscis
|
|
and its distending stomach, is as beautiful a work of Nature
|
|
as the peacock or, for that matter, the aurora borealis.
|
|
It pains me to hear you speak of it in so unappreciative a fashion.
|
|
No doubt, with due diligence, we can secure some other specimen."
|
|
|
|
"There can be no doubt of that," said Summerlee, grimly, "for one
|
|
has just disappeared behind your shirt-collar."
|
|
|
|
Challenger sprang into the air bellowing like a bull,
|
|
and tore frantically at his coat and shirt to get them off.
|
|
Summerlee and I laughed so that we could hardly help him.
|
|
At last we exposed that monstrous torso (fifty-four inches,
|
|
by the tailor's tape). His body was all matted with black hair,
|
|
out of which jungle we picked the wandering tick before it had
|
|
bitten him. But the bushes round were full of the horrible pests,
|
|
and it was clear that we must shift our camp.
|
|
|
|
But first of all it was necessary to make our arrangements with
|
|
the faithful negro, who appeared presently on the pinnacle with a
|
|
number of tins of cocoa and biscuits, which he tossed over to us.
|
|
Of the stores which remained below he was ordered to retain as much
|
|
as would keep him for two months. The Indians were to have the
|
|
remainder as a reward for their services and as payment for taking
|
|
our letters back to the Amazon. Some hours later we saw them in
|
|
single file far out upon the plain, each with a bundle on his head,
|
|
making their way back along the path we had come. Zambo occupied
|
|
our little tent at the base of the pinnacle, and there he remained,
|
|
our one link with the world below.
|
|
|
|
And now we had to decide upon our immediate movements. We shifted
|
|
our position from among the tick-laden bushes until we came
|
|
to a small clearing thickly surrounded by trees upon all sides.
|
|
There were some flat slabs of rock in the center, with an excellent
|
|
well close by, and there we sat in cleanly comfort while we made
|
|
our first plans for the invasion of this new country. Birds were
|
|
calling among the foliage--especially one with a peculiar whooping cry
|
|
which was new to us--but beyond these sounds there were no signs of life.
|
|
|
|
Our first care was to make some sort of list of our own stores,
|
|
so that we might know what we had to rely upon. What with the things
|
|
we had ourselves brought up and those which Zambo had sent across
|
|
on the rope, we were fairly well supplied. Most important of all,
|
|
in view of the dangers which might surround us, we had our four
|
|
rifles and one thousand three hundred rounds, also a shot-gun,
|
|
but not more than a hundred and fifty medium pellet cartridges.
|
|
In the matter of provisions we had enough to last for several weeks,
|
|
with a sufficiency of tobacco and a few scientific implements,
|
|
including a large telescope and a good field-glass. All these things
|
|
we collected together in the clearing, and as a first precaution,
|
|
we cut down with our hatchet and knives a number of thorny bushes,
|
|
which we piled round in a circle some fifteen yards in diameter.
|
|
This was to be our headquarters for the time--our place of refuge against
|
|
sudden danger and the guard-house for our stores. Fort Challenger,
|
|
we called it.
|
|
|
|
IT was midday before we had made ourselves secure, but the heat
|
|
was not oppressive, and the general character of the plateau,
|
|
both in its temperature and in its vegetation, was almost temperate.
|
|
The beech, the oak, and even the birch were to be found among
|
|
the tangle of trees which girt us in. One huge gingko tree,
|
|
topping all the others, shot its great limbs and maidenhair foliage
|
|
over the fort which we had constructed. In its shade we continued
|
|
our discussion, while Lord John, who had quickly taken command
|
|
in the hour of action, gave us his views.
|
|
|
|
"So long as neither man nor beast has seen or heard us, we are safe,"
|
|
said he. "From the time they know we are here our troubles begin.
|
|
There are no signs that they have found us out as yet.
|
|
So our game surely is to lie low for a time and spy out the land.
|
|
We want to have a good look at our neighbors before we get
|
|
on visitin' terms."
|
|
|
|
"But we must advance," I ventured to remark.
|
|
|
|
"By all means, sonny my boy! We will advance. But with common sense.
|
|
We must never go so far that we can't get back to our base.
|
|
Above all, we must never, unless it is life or death, fire off
|
|
our guns."
|
|
|
|
"But YOU fired yesterday," said Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
"Well, it couldn't be helped. However, the wind was strong and
|
|
blew outwards. It is not likely that the sound could have traveled
|
|
far into the plateau. By the way, what shall we call this place?
|
|
I suppose it is up to us to give it a name?"
|
|
|
|
There were several suggestions, more or less happy, but Challenger's
|
|
was final.
|
|
|
|
"It can only have one name," said he. "It is called after
|
|
the pioneer who discovered it. It is Maple White Land."
|
|
|
|
Maple White Land it became, and so it is named in that chart
|
|
which has become my special task. So it will, I trust, appear in
|
|
the atlas of the future.
|
|
|
|
The peaceful penetration of Maple White Land was the pressing
|
|
subject before us. We had the evidence of our own eyes that
|
|
the place was inhabited by some unknown creatures, and there
|
|
was that of Maple White's sketch-book to show that more dreadful
|
|
and more dangerous monsters might still appear. That there might
|
|
also prove to be human occupants and that they were of a malevolent
|
|
character was suggested by the skeleton impaled upon the bamboos,
|
|
which could not have got there had it not been dropped from above.
|
|
Our situation, stranded without possibility of escape in such
|
|
a land, was clearly full of danger, and our reasons endorsed every
|
|
measure of caution which Lord John's experience could suggest.
|
|
Yet it was surely impossible that we should halt on the edge of this
|
|
world of mystery when our very souls were tingling with impatience
|
|
to push forward and to pluck the heart from it.
|
|
|
|
We therefore blocked the entrance to our zareba by filling it up
|
|
with several thorny bushes, and left our camp with the stores
|
|
entirely surrounded by this protecting hedge. We then slowly
|
|
and cautiously set forth into the unknown, following the course
|
|
of the little stream which flowed from our spring, as it should
|
|
always serve us as a guide on our return.
|
|
|
|
Hardly had we started when we came across signs that there were indeed
|
|
wonders awaiting us. After a few hundred yards of thick forest,
|
|
containing many trees which were quite unknown to me, but which
|
|
Summerlee, who was the botanist of the party, recognized as forms
|
|
of conifera and of cycadaceous plants which have long passed away
|
|
in the world below, we entered a region where the stream widened
|
|
out and formed a considerable bog. High reeds of a peculiar type
|
|
grew thickly before us, which were pronounced to be equisetacea,
|
|
or mare's-tails, with tree-ferns scattered amongst them, all of them
|
|
swaying in a brisk wind. Suddenly Lord John, who was walking first,
|
|
halted with uplifted hand.
|
|
|
|
"Look at this!" said he. "By George, this must be the trail
|
|
of the father of all birds!"
|
|
|
|
An enormous three-toed track was imprinted in the soft mud before us.
|
|
The creature, whatever it was, had crossed the swamp and had passed
|
|
on into the forest. We all stopped to examine that monstrous spoor.
|
|
If it were indeed a bird--and what animal could leave such a mark?--
|
|
its foot was so much larger than an ostrich's that its height upon
|
|
the same scale must be enormous. Lord John looked eagerly round him
|
|
and slipped two cartridges into his elephant-gun.
|
|
|
|
"I'll stake my good name as a shikarree," said he, "that the track
|
|
is a fresh one. The creature has not passed ten minutes.
|
|
Look how the water is still oozing into that deeper print!
|
|
By Jove! See, here is the mark of a little one!"
|
|
|
|
Sure enough, smaller tracks of the same general form were running
|
|
parallel to the large ones.
|
|
|
|
"But what do you make of this?" cried Professor Summerlee,
|
|
triumphantly, pointing to what looked like the huge print
|
|
of a five-fingered human hand appearing among the three-toed marks.
|
|
|
|
"Wealden!" cried Challenger, in an ecstasy. "I've seen them in the
|
|
Wealden clay. It is a creature walking erect upon three-toed feet,
|
|
and occasionally putting one of its five-fingered forepaws upon
|
|
the ground. Not a bird, my dear Roxton--not a bird."
|
|
|
|
"A beast?"
|
|
|
|
"No; a reptile--a dinosaur. Nothing else could have left such
|
|
a track. They puzzled a worthy Sussex doctor some ninety years ago;
|
|
but who in the world could have hoped--hoped--to have seen a sight
|
|
like that?"
|
|
|
|
His words died away into a whisper, and we all stood in motionless amazement.
|
|
Following the tracks, we had left the morass and passed through a
|
|
screen of brushwood and trees. Beyond was an open glade, and in this
|
|
were five of the most extraordinary creatures that I have ever seen.
|
|
Crouching down among the bushes, we observed them at our leisure.
|
|
|
|
There were, as I say, five of them, two being adults and three young ones.
|
|
In size they were enormous. Even the babies were as big as elephants,
|
|
while the two large ones were far beyond all creatures I have ever seen.
|
|
They had slate-colored skin, which was scaled like a lizard's and
|
|
shimmered where the sun shone upon it. All five were sitting up,
|
|
balancing themselves upon their broad, powerful tails and their
|
|
huge three-toed hind-feet, while with their small five-fingered
|
|
front-feet they pulled down the branches upon which they browsed.
|
|
I do not know that I can bring their appearance home to you
|
|
better than by saying that they looked like monstrous kangaroos,
|
|
twenty feet in length, and with skins like black crocodiles.
|
|
|
|
I do not know how long we stayed motionless gazing at this marvelous
|
|
spectacle. A strong wind blew towards us and we were well concealed,
|
|
so there was no chance of discovery. From time to time the little
|
|
ones played round their parents in unwieldy gambols, the great beasts
|
|
bounding into the air and falling with dull thuds upon the earth.
|
|
The strength of the parents seemed to be limitless, for one of them,
|
|
having some difficulty in reaching a bunch of foliage which grew
|
|
upon a considerable-sized tree, put his fore-legs round the trunk
|
|
and tore it down as if it had been a sapling. The action seemed,
|
|
as I thought, to show not only the great development of its muscles,
|
|
but also the small one of its brain, for the whole weight came crashing
|
|
down upon the top of it, and it uttered a series of shrill yelps to
|
|
show that, big as it was, there was a limit to what it could endure.
|
|
The incident made it think, apparently, that the neighborhood
|
|
was dangerous, for it slowly lurched off through the wood, followed by
|
|
its mate and its three enormous infants. We saw the shimmering
|
|
slaty gleam of their skins between the tree-trunks, and their heads
|
|
undulating high above the brush-wood. Then they vanished from our sight.
|
|
|
|
I looked at my comrades. Lord John was standing at gaze with his
|
|
finger on the trigger of his elephant-gun, his eager hunter's soul
|
|
shining from his fierce eyes. What would he not give for one such
|
|
head to place between the two crossed oars above the mantelpiece
|
|
in his snuggery at the Albany! And yet his reason held him in,
|
|
for all our exploration of the wonders of this unknown land
|
|
depended upon our presence being concealed from its inhabitants.
|
|
The two professors were in silent ecstasy. In their excitement they
|
|
had unconsciously seized each other by the hand, and stood like two
|
|
little children in the presence of a marvel, Challenger's cheeks
|
|
bunched up into a seraphic smile, and Summerlee's sardonic face
|
|
softening for the moment into wonder and reverence.
|
|
|
|
"Nunc dimittis!" he cried at last. "What will they say in England
|
|
of this?"
|
|
|
|
"My dear Summerlee, I will tell you with great confidence exactly
|
|
what they will say in England," said Challenger. "They will
|
|
say that you are an infernal liar and a scientific charlatan,
|
|
exactly as you and others said of me."
|
|
|
|
"In the face of photographs?"
|
|
|
|
"Faked, Summerlee! Clumsily faked!"
|
|
|
|
"In the face of specimens?"
|
|
|
|
"Ah, there we may have them! Malone and his filthy Fleet Street
|
|
crew may be all yelping our praises yet. August the twenty-eighth--
|
|
the day we saw five live iguanodons in a glade of Maple White Land.
|
|
Put it down in your diary, my young friend, and send it to your rag."
|
|
|
|
"And be ready to get the toe-end of the editorial boot in return,"
|
|
said Lord John. "Things look a bit different from the latitude
|
|
of London, young fellah my lad. There's many a man who never tells
|
|
his adventures, for he can't hope to be believed. Who's to blame them?
|
|
For this will seem a bit of a dream to ourselves in a month or two.
|
|
WHAT did you say they were?"
|
|
|
|
"Iguanodons," said Summerlee. "You'll find their footmarks all over
|
|
the Hastings sands, in Kent, and in Sussex. The South of England
|
|
was alive with them when there was plenty of good lush green-stuff
|
|
to keep them going. Conditions have changed, and the beasts died.
|
|
Here it seems that the conditions have not changed, and the beasts
|
|
have lived."
|
|
|
|
"If ever we get out of this alive, I must have a head with me,"
|
|
said Lord John. "Lord, how some of that Somaliland-Uganda crowd
|
|
would turn a beautiful pea-green if they saw it! I don't know
|
|
what you chaps think, but it strikes me that we are on mighty thin
|
|
ice all this time."
|
|
|
|
I had the same feeling of mystery and danger around us. In the gloom
|
|
of the trees there seemed a constant menace and as we looked up
|
|
into their shadowy foliage vague terrors crept into one's heart.
|
|
It is true that these monstrous creatures which we had seen
|
|
were lumbering, inoffensive brutes which were unlikely to hurt anyone,
|
|
but in this world of wonders what other survivals might there not be--
|
|
what fierce, active horrors ready to pounce upon us from their lair
|
|
among the rocks or brushwood? I knew little of prehistoric life,
|
|
but I had a clear remembrance of one book which I had read in which it
|
|
spoke of creatures who would live upon our lions and tigers as a cat
|
|
lives upon mice. What if these also were to be found in the woods
|
|
of Maple White Land!
|
|
|
|
It was destined that on this very morning--our first in the new country--
|
|
we were to find out what strange hazards lay around us.
|
|
It was a loathsome adventure, and one of which I hate to think.
|
|
If, as Lord John said, the glade of the iguanodons will remain
|
|
with us as a dream, then surely the swamp of the pterodactyls
|
|
will forever be our nightmare. Let me set down exactly what occurred.
|
|
|
|
We passed very slowly through the woods, partly because Lord Roxton
|
|
acted as scout before he would let us advance, and partly because
|
|
at every second step one or other of our professors would fall,
|
|
with a cry of wonder, before some flower or insect which presented
|
|
him with a new type. We may have traveled two or three miles in all,
|
|
keeping to the right of the line of the stream, when we came upon
|
|
a considerable opening in the trees. A belt of brushwood led up
|
|
to a tangle of rocks--the whole plateau was strewn with boulders.
|
|
We were walking slowly towards these rocks, among bushes which
|
|
reached over our waists, when we became aware of a strange low
|
|
gabbling and whistling sound, which filled the air with a constant
|
|
clamor and appeared to come from some spot immediately before us.
|
|
Lord John held up his hand as a signal for us to stop, and he made
|
|
his way swiftly, stooping and running, to the line of rocks.
|
|
We saw him peep over them and give a gesture of amazement.
|
|
Then he stood staring as if forgetting us, so utterly entranced was
|
|
he by what he saw. Finally he waved us to come on, holding up his
|
|
hand as a signal for caution. His whole bearing made me feel that
|
|
something wonderful but dangerous lay before us.
|
|
|
|
Creeping to his side, we looked over the rocks. The place
|
|
into which we gazed was a pit, and may, in the early days,
|
|
have been one of the smaller volcanic blow-holes of the plateau.
|
|
It was bowl-shaped and at the bottom, some hundreds of yards
|
|
from where we lay, were pools of green-scummed, stagnant water,
|
|
fringed with bullrushes. It was a weird place in itself, but its
|
|
occupants made it seem like a scene from the Seven Circles of Dante.
|
|
The place was a rookery of pterodactyls. There were hundreds of them
|
|
congregated within view. All the bottom area round the water-edge
|
|
was alive with their young ones, and with hideous mothers brooding
|
|
upon their leathery, yellowish eggs. From this crawling flapping
|
|
mass of obscene reptilian life came the shocking clamor which filled
|
|
the air and the mephitic, horrible, musty odor which turned us sick.
|
|
But above, perched each upon its own stone, tall, gray, and withered,
|
|
more like dead and dried specimens than actual living creatures,
|
|
sat the horrible males, absolutely motionless save for the rolling
|
|
of their red eyes or an occasional snap of their rat-trap beaks as a
|
|
dragon-fly went past them. Their huge, membranous wings were closed
|
|
by folding their fore-arms, so that they sat like gigantic old women,
|
|
wrapped in hideous web-colored shawls, and with their ferocious heads
|
|
protruding above them. Large and small, not less than a thousand
|
|
of these filthy creatures lay in the hollow before us.
|
|
|
|
Our professors would gladly have stayed there all day, so entranced were
|
|
they by this opportunity of studying the life of a prehistoric age.
|
|
They pointed out the fish and dead birds lying about among the rocks
|
|
as proving the nature of the food of these creatures, and I heard
|
|
them congratulating each other on having cleared up the point why
|
|
the bones of this flying dragon are found in such great numbers
|
|
in certain well-defined areas, as in the Cambridge Green-sand, since
|
|
it was now seen that, like penguins, they lived in gregarious fashion.
|
|
|
|
Finally, however, Challenger, bent upon proving some point which
|
|
Summerlee had contested, thrust his head over the rock and nearly
|
|
brought destruction upon us all. In an instant the nearest male
|
|
gave a shrill, whistling cry, and flapped its twenty-foot span of
|
|
leathery wings as it soared up into the air. The females and young
|
|
ones huddled together beside the water, while the whole circle
|
|
of sentinels rose one after the other and sailed off into the sky.
|
|
It was a wonderful sight to see at least a hundred creatures
|
|
of such enormous size and hideous appearance all swooping like
|
|
swallows with swift, shearing wing-strokes above us; but soon we
|
|
realized that it was not one on which we could afford to linger.
|
|
At first the great brutes flew round in a huge ring, as if to make
|
|
sure what the exact extent of the danger might be. Then, the flight
|
|
grew lower and the circle narrower, until they were whizzing round
|
|
and round us, the dry, rustling flap of their huge slate-colored
|
|
wings filling the air with a volume of sound that made me think
|
|
of Hendon aerodrome upon a race day.
|
|
|
|
"Make for the wood and keep together," cried Lord John,
|
|
clubbing his rifle. "The brutes mean mischief."
|
|
|
|
The moment we attempted to retreat the circle closed in upon us,
|
|
until the tips of the wings of those nearest to us nearly
|
|
touched our faces. We beat at them with the stocks of our guns,
|
|
but there was nothing solid or vulnerable to strike. Then suddenly
|
|
out of the whizzing, slate-colored circle a long neck shot out,
|
|
and a fierce beak made a thrust at us. Another and another followed.
|
|
Summerlee gave a cry and put his hand to his face, from which the blood
|
|
was streaming. I felt a prod at the back of my neck, and turned
|
|
dizzy with the shock. Challenger fell, and as I stooped to pick him
|
|
up I was again struck from behind and dropped on the top of him.
|
|
At the same instant I heard the crash of Lord John's elephant-gun, and,
|
|
looking up, saw one of the creatures with a broken wing struggling
|
|
upon the ground, spitting and gurgling at us with a wide-opened beak
|
|
and blood-shot, goggled eyes, like some devil in a medieval picture.
|
|
Its comrades had flown higher at the sudden sound, and were circling
|
|
above our heads.
|
|
|
|
"Now," cried Lord John, "now for our lives!"
|
|
|
|
We staggered through the brushwood, and even as we reached the trees
|
|
the harpies were on us again. Summerlee was knocked down, but we
|
|
tore him up and rushed among the trunks. Once there we were safe,
|
|
for those huge wings had no space for their sweep beneath the branches.
|
|
As we limped homewards, sadly mauled and discomfited, we saw them
|
|
for a long time flying at a great height against the deep blue
|
|
sky above our heads, soaring round and round, no bigger than
|
|
wood-pigeons, with their eyes no doubt still following our progress.
|
|
At last, however, as we reached the thicker woods they gave up
|
|
the chase, and we saw them no more.
|
|
|
|
A most interesting and convincing experience," said Challenger,
|
|
as we halted beside the brook and he bathed a swollen knee.
|
|
"We are exceptionally well informed, Summerlee, as to the habits of
|
|
the enraged pterodactyl."
|
|
|
|
Summerlee was wiping the blood from a cut in his forehead,
|
|
while I was tying up a nasty stab in the muscle of the neck.
|
|
Lord John had the shoulder of his coat torn away, but the creature's
|
|
teeth had only grazed the flesh.
|
|
|
|
"It is worth noting," Challenger continued, "that our young friend
|
|
has received an undoubted stab, while Lord John's coat could only
|
|
have been torn by a bite. In my own case, I was beaten about
|
|
the head by their wings, so we have had a remarkable exhibition
|
|
of their various methods of offence."
|
|
|
|
"It has been touch and go for our lives," said Lord John,
|
|
gravely, "and I could not think of a more rotten sort
|
|
of death than to be outed by such filthy vermin.
|
|
I was sorry to fire my rifle, but, by Jove! there was no great choice."
|
|
|
|
"We should not be here if you hadn't," said I, with conviction.
|
|
|
|
"It may do no harm," said he. "Among these woods there must be
|
|
many loud cracks from splitting or falling trees which would be
|
|
just like the sound of a gun. But now, if you are of my opinion,
|
|
we have had thrills enough for one day, and had best get back
|
|
to the surgical box at the camp for some carbolic. Who knows
|
|
what venom these beasts may have in their hideous jaws?"
|
|
|
|
But surely no men ever had just such a day since the world began.
|
|
Some fresh surprise was ever in store for us. When, following the
|
|
course of our brook, we at last reached our glade and saw the thorny
|
|
barricade of our camp, we thought that our adventures were at an end.
|
|
But we had something more to think of before we could rest. The gate
|
|
of Fort Challenger had been untouched, the walls were unbroken,
|
|
and yet it had been visited by some strange and powerful creature
|
|
in our absence. No foot-mark showed a trace of its nature,
|
|
and only the overhanging branch of the enormous ginko tree
|
|
suggested how it might have come and gone; but of its malevolent
|
|
strength there was ample evidence in the condition of our stores.
|
|
They were strewn at random all over the ground, and one tin of meat
|
|
had been crushed into pieces so as to extract the contents.
|
|
A case of cartridges had been shattered into matchwood,
|
|
and one of the brass shells lay shredded into pieces beside it.
|
|
Again the feeling of vague horror came upon our souls, and we
|
|
gazed round with frightened eyes at the dark shadows which lay
|
|
around us, in all of which some fearsome shape might be lurking.
|
|
How good it was when we were hailed by the voice of Zambo, and,
|
|
going to the edge of the plateau, saw him sitting grinning at us
|
|
upon the top of the opposite pinnacle.
|
|
|
|
"All well, Massa Challenger, all well!" he cried. "Me stay here.
|
|
No fear. You always find me when you want."
|
|
|
|
His honest black face, and the immense view before us, which carried
|
|
us half-way back to the affluent of the Amazon, helped us to remember
|
|
that we really were upon this earth in the twentieth century, and had
|
|
not by some magic been conveyed to some raw planet in its earliest
|
|
and wildest state. How difficult it was to realize that the violet
|
|
line upon the far horizon was well advanced to that great river
|
|
upon which huge steamers ran, and folk talked of the small affairs
|
|
of life, while we, marooned among the creatures of a bygone age,
|
|
could but gaze towards it and yearn for all that it meant!
|
|
|
|
One other memory remains with me of this wonderful day, and with
|
|
it I will close this letter. The two professors, their tempers
|
|
aggravated no doubt by their injuries, had fallen out as to whether
|
|
our assailants were of the genus pterodactylus or dimorphodon,
|
|
and high words had ensued. To avoid their wrangling I moved
|
|
some little way apart, and was seated smoking upon the trunk
|
|
of a fallen tree, when Lord John strolled over in my direction.
|
|
|
|
"I say, Malone," said he, "do you remember that place where those
|
|
beasts were?"
|
|
|
|
"Very clearly."
|
|
|
|
"A sort of volcanic pit, was it not?"
|
|
|
|
"Exactly," said I.
|
|
|
|
"Did you notice the soil?"
|
|
|
|
"Rocks."
|
|
|
|
"But round the water--where the reeds were?"
|
|
|
|
"It was a bluish soil. It looked like clay."
|
|
|
|
"Exactly. A volcanic tube full of blue clay."
|
|
|
|
"What of that?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, nothing, nothing," said he, and strolled back to where the voices
|
|
of the contending men of science rose in a prolonged duet, the high,
|
|
strident note of Summerlee rising and falling to the sonorous bass
|
|
of Challenger. I should have thought no more of Lord John's remark
|
|
were it not that once again that night I heard him mutter to himself:
|
|
"Blue clay--clay in a volcanic tube!" They were the last words I
|
|
heard before I dropped into an exhausted sleep.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI
|
|
|
|
"For once I was the Hero"
|
|
|
|
Lord John Roxton was right when he thought that some specially
|
|
toxic quality might lie in the bite of the horrible creatures
|
|
which had attacked us. On the morning after our first adventure
|
|
upon the plateau, both Summerlee and I were in great pain and fever,
|
|
while Challenger's knee was so bruised that he could hardly limp.
|
|
We kept to our camp all day, therefore, Lord John busying himself,
|
|
with such help as we could give him, in raising the height
|
|
and thickness of the thorny walls which were our only defense.
|
|
I remember that during the whole long day I was haunted by the feeling
|
|
that we were closely observed, though by whom or whence I could give
|
|
no guess.
|
|
|
|
So strong was the impression that I told Professor Challenger of it,
|
|
who put it down to the cerebral excitement caused by my fever.
|
|
Again and again I glanced round swiftly, with the conviction that I
|
|
was about to see something, but only to meet the dark tangle of our
|
|
hedge or the solemn and cavernous gloom of the great trees which arched
|
|
above our heads. And yet the feeling grew ever stronger in my own
|
|
mind that something observant and something malevolent was at our
|
|
very elbow. I thought of the Indian superstition of the Curupuri--
|
|
the dreadful, lurking spirit of the woods--and I could have imagined
|
|
that his terrible presence haunted those who had invaded his most
|
|
remote and sacred retreat.
|
|
|
|
That night (our third in Maple White Land) we had an experience
|
|
which left a fearful impression upon our minds, and made us thankful
|
|
that Lord John had worked so hard in making our retreat impregnable.
|
|
We were all sleeping round our dying fire when we were aroused--
|
|
or, rather, I should say, shot out of our slumbers--by a succession
|
|
of the most frightful cries and screams to which I have ever listened.
|
|
I know no sound to which I could compare this amazing tumult,
|
|
which seemed to come from some spot within a few hundred yards of
|
|
our camp. It was as ear-splitting as any whistle of a railway-engine;
|
|
but whereas the whistle is a clear, mechanical, sharp-edged sound,
|
|
this was far deeper in volume and vibrant with the uttermost strain
|
|
of agony and horror. We clapped our hands to our ears to shut out
|
|
that nerve-shaking appeal. A cold sweat broke out over my body,
|
|
and my heart turned sick at the misery of it. All the woes
|
|
of tortured life, all its stupendous indictment of high heaven,
|
|
its innumerable sorrows, seemed to be centered and condensed into
|
|
that one dreadful, agonized cry. And then, under this high-pitched,
|
|
ringing sound there was another, more intermittent, a low,
|
|
deep-chested laugh, a growling, throaty gurgle of merriment which formed
|
|
a grotesque accompaniment to the shriek with which it was blended.
|
|
For three or four minutes on end the fearsome duet continued,
|
|
while all the foliage rustled with the rising of startled birds.
|
|
Then it shut off as suddenly as it began. For a long time we sat
|
|
in horrified silence. Then Lord John threw a bundle of twigs upon
|
|
the fire, and their red glare lit up the intent faces of my companions
|
|
and flickered over the great boughs above our heads.
|
|
|
|
"What was it?" I whispered.
|
|
|
|
"We shall know in the morning," said Lord John. "It was close to us--
|
|
not farther than the glade."
|
|
|
|
"We have been privileged to overhear a prehistoric tragedy,
|
|
the sort of drama which occurred among the reeds upon the border
|
|
of some Jurassic lagoon, when the greater dragon pinned the lesser
|
|
among the slime," said Challenger, with more solemnity than I had
|
|
ever heard in his voice. "It was surely well for man that he came
|
|
late in the order of creation. There were powers abroad in earlier
|
|
days which no courage and no mechanism of his could have met.
|
|
What could his sling, his throwing-stick, or his arrow avail him
|
|
against such forces as have been loose to-night? Even with a modern
|
|
rifle it would be all odds on the monster."
|
|
|
|
"I think I should back my little friend," said Lord John, caressing
|
|
his Express. "But the beast would certainly have a good sporting chance."
|
|
|
|
Summerlee raised his hand.
|
|
|
|
"Hush!" he cried. "Surely I hear something?"
|
|
|
|
From the utter silence there emerged a deep, regular pat-pat. It was
|
|
the tread of some animal--the rhythm of soft but heavy pads placed
|
|
cautiously upon the ground. It stole slowly round the camp, and then
|
|
halted near our gateway. There was a low, sibilant rise and fall--
|
|
the breathing of the creature. Only our feeble hedge separated us
|
|
from this horror of the night. Each of us had seized his rifle,
|
|
and Lord John had pulled out a small bush to make an embrasure in
|
|
the hedge.
|
|
|
|
"By George!" he whispered. "I think I can see it!"
|
|
|
|
I stooped and peered over his shoulder through the gap. Yes, I could
|
|
see it, too. In the deep shadow of the tree there was a deeper
|
|
shadow yet, black, inchoate, vague--a crouching form full of savage
|
|
vigor and menace. It was no higher than a horse, but the dim
|
|
outline suggested vast bulk and strength. That hissing pant,
|
|
as regular and full-volumed as the exhaust of an engine, spoke of a
|
|
monstrous organism. Once, as it moved, I thought I saw the glint
|
|
of two terrible, greenish eyes. There was an uneasy rustling,
|
|
as if it were crawling slowly forward.
|
|
|
|
"I believe it is going to spring!" said I, cocking my rifle.
|
|
|
|
"Don't fire! Don't fire!" whispered Lord John. "The crash of a gun
|
|
in this silent night would be heard for miles. Keep it as a last card."
|
|
|
|
"If it gets over the hedge we're done," said Summerlee, and his
|
|
voice crackled into a nervous laugh as he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"No, it must not get over," cried Lord John; "but hold your fire
|
|
to the last. Perhaps I can make something of the fellow.
|
|
I'll chance it, anyhow."
|
|
|
|
It was as brave an act as ever I saw a man do. He stooped to
|
|
the fire, picked up a blazing branch, and slipped in an instant
|
|
through a sallyport which he had made in our gateway. The thing
|
|
moved forward with a dreadful snarl. Lord John never hesitated,
|
|
but, running towards it with a quick, light step, he dashed the
|
|
flaming wood into the brute's face. For one moment I had a vision
|
|
of a horrible mask like a giant toad's, of a warty, leprous skin,
|
|
and of a loose mouth all beslobbered with fresh blood. The next,
|
|
there was a crash in the underwood and our dreadful visitor was gone.
|
|
|
|
"I thought he wouldn't face the fire," said Lord John, laughing,
|
|
as he came back and threw his branch among the faggots.
|
|
|
|
"You should not have taken such a risk!" we all cried.
|
|
|
|
"There was nothin' else to be done. If he had got among us we should
|
|
have shot each other in tryin' to down him. On the other hand,
|
|
if we had fired through the hedge and wounded him he would soon have
|
|
been on the top of us--to say nothin' of giving ourselves away.
|
|
On the whole, I think that we are jolly well out of it.
|
|
What was he, then?"
|
|
|
|
Our learned men looked at each other with some hesitation.
|
|
|
|
"Personally, I am unable to classify the creature with any certainty,"
|
|
said Summerlee, lighting his pipe from the fire.
|
|
|
|
"In refusing to commit yourself you are but showing a proper
|
|
scientific reserve," said Challenger, with massive condescension.
|
|
"I am not myself prepared to go farther than to say in general terms
|
|
that we have almost certainly been in contact to-night with some form
|
|
of carnivorous dinosaur. I have already expressed my anticipation
|
|
that something of the sort might exist upon this plateau."
|
|
|
|
"We have to bear in mind," remarked Summerlee, that there are many
|
|
prehistoric forms which have never come down to us. It would be rash
|
|
to suppose that we can give a name to all that we are likely to meet."
|
|
|
|
"Exactly. A rough classification may be the best that we can attempt.
|
|
To-morrow some further evidence may help us to an identification.
|
|
Meantime we can only renew our interrupted slumbers."
|
|
|
|
"But not without a sentinel," said Lord John, with decision.
|
|
"We can't afford to take chances in a country like this.
|
|
Two-hour spells in the future, for each of us."
|
|
|
|
"Then I'll just finish my pipe in starting the first one,"
|
|
said Professor Summerlee; and from that time onwards we never
|
|
trusted ourselves again without a watchman.
|
|
|
|
In the morning it was not long before we discovered the source
|
|
of the hideous uproar which had aroused us in the night.
|
|
The iguanodon glade was the scene of a horrible butchery.
|
|
From the pools of blood and the enormous lumps of flesh scattered
|
|
in every direction over the green sward we imagined at first that
|
|
a number of animals had been killed, but on examining the remains
|
|
more closely we discovered that all this carnage came from one of
|
|
these unwieldy monsters, which had been literally torn to pieces
|
|
by some creature not larger, perhaps, but far more ferocious, than itself.
|
|
|
|
Our two professors sat in absorbed argument, examining piece after piece,
|
|
which showed the marks of savage teeth and of enormous claws.
|
|
|
|
"Our judgment must still be in abeyance," said Professor Challenger,
|
|
with a huge slab of whitish-colored flesh across his knee.
|
|
"The indications would be consistent with the presence of a saber-toothed
|
|
tiger, such as are still found among the breccia of our caverns;
|
|
but the creature actually seen was undoubtedly of a larger and more
|
|
reptilian character. Personally, I should pronounce for allosaurus."
|
|
|
|
"Or megalosaurus," said Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
"Exactly. Any one of the larger carnivorous dinosaurs would meet
|
|
the case. Among them are to be found all the most terrible types
|
|
of animal life that have ever cursed the earth or blessed a museum."
|
|
He laughed sonorously at his own conceit, for, though he had little
|
|
sense of humor, the crudest pleasantry from his own lips moved him
|
|
always to roars of appreciation.
|
|
|
|
"The less noise the better," said Lord Roxton, curtly. "We don't
|
|
know who or what may be near us. If this fellah comes back for his
|
|
breakfast and catches us here we won't have so much to laugh at.
|
|
By the way, what is this mark upon the iguanodon's hide?"
|
|
|
|
On the dull, scaly, slate-colored skin somewhere above the shoulder,
|
|
there was a singular black circle of some substance which looked
|
|
like asphalt. None of us could suggest what it meant, though
|
|
Summerlee was of opinion that he had seen something similar upon
|
|
one of the young ones two days before. Challenger said nothing,
|
|
but looked pompous and puffy, as if he could if he would,
|
|
so that finally Lord John asked his opinion direct.
|
|
|
|
"If your lordship will graciously permit me to open my mouth, I shall
|
|
be happy to express my sentiments," said he, with elaborate sarcasm.
|
|
I am not in the habit of being taken to task in the fashion which seems
|
|
to be customary with your lordship. I was not aware that it was
|
|
necessary to ask your permission before smiling at a harmless pleasantry."
|
|
|
|
It was not until he had received his apology that our touchy friend
|
|
would suffer himself to be appeased. When at last his ruffled
|
|
feelings were at ease, he addressed us at some length from his
|
|
seat upon a fallen tree, speaking, as his habit was, as if he
|
|
were imparting most precious information to a class of a thousand.
|
|
|
|
"With regard to the marking," said he, "I am inclined to agree
|
|
with my friend and colleague, Professor Summerlee, that the stains
|
|
are from asphalt. As this plateau is, in its very nature,
|
|
highly volcanic, and as asphalt is a substance which one associates
|
|
with Plutonic forces, I cannot doubt that it exists in the free
|
|
liquid state, and that the creatures may have come in contact with it.
|
|
A much more important problem is the question as to the existence
|
|
of the carnivorous monster which has left its traces in this glade.
|
|
We know roughly that this plateau is not larger than an average
|
|
English county. Within this confined space a certain number
|
|
of creatures, mostly types which have passed away in the world below,
|
|
have lived together for innumerable years. Now, it is very clear
|
|
to me that in so long a period one would have expected that the
|
|
carnivorous creatures, multiplying unchecked, would have exhausted
|
|
their food supply and have been compelled to either modify their
|
|
flesh-eating habits or die of hunger. This we see has not been so.
|
|
We can only imagine, therefore, that the balance of Nature is preserved
|
|
by some check which limits the numbers of these ferocious creatures.
|
|
One of the many interesting problems, therefore, which await our
|
|
solution is to discover what that check may be and how it operates.
|
|
I venture to trust that we may have some future opportunity for
|
|
the closer study of the carnivorous dinosaurs."
|
|
|
|
"And I venture to trust we may not," I observed.
|
|
|
|
The Professor only raised his great eyebrows, as the schoolmaster
|
|
meets the irrelevant observation of the naughty boy.
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps Professor Summerlee may have an observation to make,"
|
|
he said, and the two savants ascended together into some rarefied
|
|
scientific atmosphere, where the possibilities of a modification
|
|
of the birth-rate were weighed against the decline of the food supply
|
|
as a check in the struggle for existence.
|
|
|
|
That morning we mapped out a small portion of the plateau,
|
|
avoiding the swamp of the pterodactyls, and keeping to the east
|
|
of our brook instead of to the west. In that direction the country
|
|
was still thickly wooded, with so much undergrowth that our progress
|
|
was very slow.
|
|
|
|
I have dwelt up to now upon the terrors of Maple White Land; but there
|
|
was another side to the subject, for all that morning we wandered
|
|
among lovely flowers--mostly, as I observed, white or yellow in color,
|
|
these being, as our professors explained, the primitive flower-shades.
|
|
In many places the ground was absolutely covered with them,
|
|
and as we walked ankle-deep on that wonderful yielding carpet,
|
|
the scent was almost intoxicating in its sweetness and intensity.
|
|
The homely English bee buzzed everywhere around us. Many of the trees
|
|
under which we passed had their branches bowed down with fruit,
|
|
some of which were of familiar sorts, while other varieties were new.
|
|
By observing which of them were pecked by the birds we avoided all
|
|
danger of poison and added a delicious variety to our food reserve.
|
|
In the jungle which we traversed were numerous hard-trodden paths
|
|
made by the wild beasts, and in the more marshy places we saw
|
|
a profusion of strange footmarks, including many of the iguanodon.
|
|
Once in a grove we observed several of these great creatures grazing,
|
|
and Lord John, with his glass, was able to report that they also were
|
|
spotted with asphalt, though in a different place to the one which we
|
|
had examined in the morning. What this phenomenon meant we could
|
|
not imagine.
|
|
|
|
We saw many small animals, such as porcupines, a scaly ant-eater,
|
|
and a wild pig, piebald in color and with long curved tusks.
|
|
Once, through a break in the trees, we saw a clear shoulder of green
|
|
hill some distance away, and across this a large dun-colored animal
|
|
was traveling at a considerable pace. It passed so swiftly that we
|
|
were unable to say what it was; but if it were a deer, as was claimed
|
|
by Lord John, it must have been as large as those monstrous Irish
|
|
elk which are still dug up from time to time in the bogs of my native land.
|
|
|
|
Ever since the mysterious visit which had been paid to our camp
|
|
we always returned to it with some misgivings. However, on this
|
|
occasion we found everything in order.
|
|
|
|
That evening we had a grand discussion upon our present situation
|
|
and future plans, which I must describe at some length, as it led
|
|
to a new departure by which we were enabled to gain a more complete
|
|
knowledge of Maple White Land than might have come in many weeks
|
|
of exploring. It was Summerlee who opened the debate. All day he
|
|
had been querulous in manner, and now some remark of Lord John's
|
|
as to what we should do on the morrow brought all his bitterness
|
|
to a head.
|
|
|
|
"What we ought to be doing to-day, to-morrow, and all the time,"
|
|
said he, "is finding some way out of the trap into which we have fallen.
|
|
You are all turning your brains towards getting into this country.
|
|
I say that we should be scheming how to get out of it."
|
|
|
|
"I am surprised, sir," boomed Challenger, stroking his majestic beard,
|
|
"that any man of science should commit himself to so ignoble
|
|
a sentiment. You are in a land which offers such an inducement
|
|
to the ambitious naturalist as none ever has since the world began,
|
|
and you suggest leaving it before we have acquired more than
|
|
the most superficial knowledge of it or of its contents.
|
|
I expected better things of you, Professor Summerlee."
|
|
|
|
"You must remember," said Summerlee, sourly, "that I have a large
|
|
class in London who are at present at the mercy of an extremely
|
|
inefficient locum tenens. This makes my situation different
|
|
from yours, Professor Challenger, since, so far as I know,
|
|
you have never been entrusted with any responsible educational work."
|
|
|
|
"Quite so," said Challenger. "I have felt it to be a sacrilege
|
|
to divert a brain which is capable of the highest original research
|
|
to any lesser object. That is why I have sternly set my face
|
|
against any proffered scholastic appointment."
|
|
|
|
"For example?" asked Summerlee, with a sneer; but Lord John hastened
|
|
to change the conversation.
|
|
|
|
"I must say," said he, "that I think it would be a mighty poor
|
|
thing to go back to London before I know a great deal more of this
|
|
place than I do at present."
|
|
|
|
"I could never dare to walk into the back office of my paper
|
|
and face old McArdle," said I. (You will excuse the frankness of
|
|
this report, will you not, sir?) "He'd never forgive me for leaving
|
|
such unexhausted copy behind me. Besides, so far as I can see
|
|
it is not worth discussing, since we can't get down, even if we wanted."
|
|
|
|
"Our young friend makes up for many obvious mental lacunae
|
|
by some measure of primitive common sense, remarked Challenger.
|
|
"The interests of his deplorable profession are immaterial
|
|
to us; but, as he observes, we cannot get down in any case,
|
|
so it is a waste of energy to discuss it."
|
|
|
|
"It is a waste of energy to do anything else," growled Summerlee
|
|
from behind his pipe. "Let me remind you that we came here upon
|
|
a perfectly definite mission, entrusted to us at the meeting
|
|
of the Zoological Institute in London. That mission was to test
|
|
the truth of Professor Challenger's statements. Those statements,
|
|
as I am bound to admit, we are now in a position to endorse.
|
|
Our ostensible work is therefore done. As to the detail which
|
|
remains to be worked out upon this plateau, it is so enormous
|
|
that only a large expedition, with a very special equipment,
|
|
could hope to cope with it. Should we attempt to do so ourselves,
|
|
the only possible result must be that we shall never return with
|
|
the important contribution to science which we have already gained.
|
|
Professor Challenger has devised means for getting us on to this
|
|
plateau when it appeared to be inaccessible; I think that we should
|
|
now call upon him to use the same ingenuity in getting us back
|
|
to the world from which we came."
|
|
|
|
I confess that as Summerlee stated his view it struck me as
|
|
altogether reasonable. Even Challenger was affected by the consideration
|
|
that his enemies would never stand confuted if the confirmation
|
|
of his statements should never reach those who had doubted them.
|
|
|
|
"The problem of the descent is at first sight a formidable one,"
|
|
said he, "and yet I cannot doubt that the intellect can solve it.
|
|
I am prepared to agree with our colleague that a protracted stay
|
|
in Maple White Land is at present inadvisable, and that the question
|
|
of our return will soon have to be faced. I absolutely refuse
|
|
to leave, however, until we have made at least a superficial
|
|
examination of this country, and are able to take back with us
|
|
something in the nature of a chart."
|
|
|
|
Professor Summerlee gave a snort of impatience.
|
|
|
|
"We have spent two long days in exploration," said he, "and we are no
|
|
wiser as to the actual geography of the place than when we started.
|
|
It is clear that it is all thickly wooded, and it would take months
|
|
to penetrate it and to learn the relations of one part to another.
|
|
If there were some central peak it would be different, but it all
|
|
slopes downwards, so far as we can see. The farther we go the less
|
|
likely it is that we will get any general view."
|
|
|
|
It was at that moment that I had my inspiration. My eyes chanced
|
|
to light upon the enormous gnarled trunk of the gingko tree which cast
|
|
its huge branches over us. Surely, if its bole exceeded that of
|
|
all others, its height must do the same. If the rim of the plateau
|
|
was indeed the highest point, then why should this mighty tree
|
|
not prove to be a watchtower which commanded the whole country?
|
|
Now, ever since I ran wild as a lad in Ireland I have been a bold
|
|
and skilled tree-climber. My comrades might be my masters on the rocks,
|
|
but I knew that I would be supreme among those branches. Could I
|
|
only get my legs on to the lowest of the giant off-shoots, then it
|
|
would be strange indeed if I could not make my way to the top.
|
|
My comrades were delighted at my idea.
|
|
|
|
"Our young friend," said Challenger, bunching up the red apples
|
|
of his cheeks, "is capable of acrobatic exertions which would
|
|
be impossible to a man of a more solid, though possibly
|
|
of a more commanding, appearance. I applaud his resolution."
|
|
|
|
"By George, young fellah, you've put your hand on it!" said Lord John,
|
|
clapping me on the back. "How we never came to think of it before
|
|
I can't imagine! There's not more than an hour of daylight left,
|
|
but if you take your notebook you may be able to get some rough
|
|
sketch of the place. If we put these three ammunition cases under
|
|
the branch, I will soon hoist you on to it."
|
|
|
|
He stood on the boxes while I faced the trunk, and was gently
|
|
raising me when Challenger sprang forward and gave me such a
|
|
thrust with his huge hand that he fairly shot me into the tree.
|
|
With both arms clasping the branch, I scrambled hard with my feet
|
|
until I had worked, first my body, and then my knees, onto it.
|
|
There were three excellent off-shoots, like huge rungs of a ladder,
|
|
above my head, and a tangle of convenient branches beyond,
|
|
so that I clambered onwards with such speed that I soon lost sight
|
|
of the ground and had nothing but foliage beneath me. Now and then
|
|
I encountered a check, and once I had to shin up a creeper for
|
|
eight or ten feet, but I made excellent progress, and the booming
|
|
of Challenger's voice seemed to be a great distance beneath me.
|
|
The tree was, however, enormous, and, looking upwards, I could see
|
|
no thinning of the leaves above my head. There was some thick,
|
|
bush-like clump which seemed to be a parasite upon a branch up
|
|
which I was swarming. I leaned my head round it in order to see
|
|
what was beyond, and I nearly fell out of the tree in my surprise
|
|
and horror at what I saw.
|
|
|
|
A face was gazing into mine--at the distance of only a foot or two.
|
|
The creature that owned it had been crouching behind the parasite,
|
|
and had looked round it at the same instant that I did.
|
|
It was a human face--or at least it was far more human than any
|
|
monkey's that I have ever seen. It was long, whitish, and blotched
|
|
with pimples, the nose flattened, and the lower jaw projecting,
|
|
with a bristle of coarse whiskers round the chin. The eyes,
|
|
which were under thick and heavy brows, were bestial and ferocious,
|
|
and as it opened its mouth to snarl what sounded like a curse at me
|
|
I observed that it had curved, sharp canine teeth. For an instant I
|
|
read hatred and menace in the evil eyes. Then, as quick as a flash,
|
|
came an expression of overpowering fear. There was a crash of
|
|
broken boughs as it dived wildly down into the tangle of green.
|
|
I caught a glimpse of a hairy body like that of a reddish pig,
|
|
and then it was gone amid a swirl of leaves and branches.
|
|
|
|
"What's the matter?" shouted Roxton from below. "Anything wrong
|
|
with you?"
|
|
|
|
"Did you see it?" I cried, with my arms round the branch and all
|
|
my nerves tingling.
|
|
|
|
"We heard a row, as if your foot had slipped. What was it?"
|
|
|
|
I was so shocked at the sudden and strange appearance of this
|
|
ape-man that I hesitated whether I should not climb down again
|
|
and tell my experience to my companions. But I was already so far
|
|
up the great tree that it seemed a humiliation to return without
|
|
having carried out my mission.
|
|
|
|
After a long pause, therefore, to recover my breath and my courage,
|
|
I continued my ascent. Once I put my weight upon a rotten branch
|
|
and swung for a few seconds by my hands, but in the main it was all
|
|
easy climbing. Gradually the leaves thinned around me, and I was aware,
|
|
from the wind upon my face, that I had topped all the trees of
|
|
the forest. I was determined, however, not to look about me before I
|
|
had reached the very highest point, so I scrambled on until I had
|
|
got so far that the topmost branch was bending beneath my weight.
|
|
There I settled into a convenient fork, and, balancing myself securely,
|
|
I found myself looking down at a most wonderful panorama of this
|
|
strange country in which we found ourselves.
|
|
|
|
The sun was just above the western sky-line, and the evening was
|
|
a particularly bright and clear one, so that the whole extent of
|
|
the plateau was visible beneath me. It was, as seen from this height,
|
|
of an oval contour, with a breadth of about thirty miles and a
|
|
width of twenty. Its general shape was that of a shallow funnel,
|
|
all the sides sloping down to a considerable lake in the center.
|
|
This lake may have been ten miles in circumference, and lay very
|
|
green and beautiful in the evening light, with a thick fringe
|
|
of reeds at its edges, and with its surface broken by several
|
|
yellow sandbanks, which gleamed golden in the mellow sunshine.
|
|
A number of long dark objects, which were too large for alligators
|
|
and too long for canoes, lay upon the edges of these patches of sand.
|
|
With my glass I could clearly see that they were alive, but what
|
|
their nature might be I could not imagine.
|
|
|
|
From the side of the plateau on which we were, slopes of woodland,
|
|
with occasional glades, stretched down for five or six miles
|
|
to the central lake. I could see at my very feet the glade
|
|
of the iguanodons, and farther off was a round opening in the
|
|
trees which marked the swamp of the pterodactyls. On the side
|
|
facing me, however, the plateau presented a very different aspect.
|
|
There the basalt cliffs of the outside were reproduced upon
|
|
the inside, forming an escarpment about two hundred feet high,
|
|
with a woody slope beneath it. Along the base of these red cliffs,
|
|
some distance above the ground, I could see a number of dark holes
|
|
through the glass, which I conjectured to be the mouths of caves.
|
|
At the opening of one of these something white was shimmering,
|
|
but I was unable to make out what it was. I sat charting the country
|
|
until the sun had set and it was so dark that I could no longer
|
|
distinguish details. Then I climbed down to my companions waiting
|
|
for me so eagerly at the bottom of the great tree. For once
|
|
I was the hero of the expedition. Alone I had thought of it,
|
|
and alone I had done it; and here was the chart which would save
|
|
us a month's blind groping among unknown dangers. Each of them
|
|
shook me solemnly by the hand.
|
|
|
|
But before they discussed the details of my map I had to tell them
|
|
of my encounter with the ape-man among the branches.
|
|
|
|
"He has been there all the time," said I.
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that?" asked Lord John.
|
|
|
|
"Because I have never been without that feeling that something
|
|
malevolent was watching us. I mentioned it to you, Professor Challenger."
|
|
|
|
"Our young friend certainly said something of the kind. He is
|
|
also the one among us who is endowed with that Celtic temperament
|
|
which would make him sensitive to such impressions."
|
|
|
|
"The whole theory of telepathy----" began Summerlee, filling his pipe.
|
|
|
|
"Is too vast to be now discussed," said Challenger, with decision.
|
|
"Tell me, now," he added, with the air of a bishop addressing
|
|
a Sunday-school, "did you happen to observe whether the creature
|
|
could cross its thumb over its palm?"
|
|
|
|
"No, indeed."
|
|
|
|
"Had it a tail?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Was the foot prehensile?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not think it could have made off so fast among the branches
|
|
if it could not get a grip with its feet."
|
|
|
|
"In South America there are, if my memory serves me--you will
|
|
check the observation, Professor Summerlee--some thirty-six
|
|
species of monkeys, but the anthropoid ape is unknown.
|
|
It is clear, however, that he exists in this country, and that he
|
|
is not the hairy, gorilla-like variety, which is never seen out
|
|
of Africa or the East." (I was inclined to interpolate, as I
|
|
looked at him, that I had seen his first cousin in Kensington.)
|
|
"This is a whiskered and colorless type, the latter characteristic
|
|
pointing to the fact that he spends his days in arboreal seclusion.
|
|
The question which we have to face is whether he approaches more
|
|
closely to the ape or the man. In the latter case, he may well
|
|
approximate to what the vulgar have called the `missing link.'
|
|
The solution of this problem is our immediate duty."
|
|
|
|
"It is nothing of the sort," said Summerlee, abruptly. "Now that,
|
|
through the intelligence and activity of Mr. Malone" (I cannot help
|
|
quoting the words), "we have got our chart, our one and only immediate
|
|
duty is to get ourselves safe and sound out of this awful place."
|
|
|
|
"The flesh-pots of civilization," groaned Challenger.
|
|
|
|
"The ink-pots of civilization, sir. It is our task to put on record
|
|
what we have seen, and to leave the further exploration to others.
|
|
You all agreed as much before Mr. Malone got us the chart."
|
|
|
|
"Well," said Challenger, "I admit that my mind will be more at
|
|
ease when I am assured that the result of our expedition has
|
|
been conveyed to our friends. How we are to get down from this
|
|
place I have not as yet an idea. I have never yet encountered
|
|
any problem, however, which my inventive brain was unable to solve,
|
|
and I promise you that to-morrow I will turn my attention
|
|
to the question of our descent." And so the matter was allowed to rest.
|
|
|
|
But that evening, by the light of the fire and of a single candle,
|
|
the first map of the lost world was elaborated. Every detail
|
|
which I had roughly noted from my watch-tower was drawn out in its
|
|
relative place. Challenger's pencil hovered over the great blank
|
|
which marked the lake.
|
|
|
|
"What shall we call it?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Why should you not take the chance of perpetuating your own name?"
|
|
said Summerlee, with his usual touch of acidity.
|
|
|
|
"I trust, sir, that my name will have other and more personal claims
|
|
upon posterity," said Challenger, severely. "Any ignoramus can hand
|
|
down his worthless memory by imposing it upon a mountain or a river.
|
|
I need no such monument."
|
|
|
|
Summerlee, with a twisted smile, was about to make some fresh
|
|
assault when Lord John hastened to intervene.
|
|
|
|
"It's up to you, young fellah, to name the lake," said he.
|
|
"You saw it first, and, by George, if you choose to put `Lake Malone'
|
|
on it, no one has a better right."
|
|
|
|
"By all means. Let our young friend give it a name," said Challenger.
|
|
|
|
"Then, said I, blushing, I dare say, as I said it, "let it be named
|
|
Lake Gladys."
|
|
|
|
"Don't you think the Central Lake would be more descriptive?"
|
|
remarked Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
"I should prefer Lake Gladys."
|
|
|
|
Challenger looked at me sympathetically, and shook his great head
|
|
in mock disapproval. "Boys will be boys," said he. "Lake Gladys
|
|
let it be."
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII
|
|
|
|
"It was Dreadful in the Forest"
|
|
|
|
I have said--or perhaps I have not said, for my memory plays me
|
|
sad tricks these days--that I glowed with pride when three such
|
|
men as my comrades thanked me for having saved, or at least
|
|
greatly helped, the situation. As the youngster of the party,
|
|
not merely in years, but in experience, character, knowledge, and all
|
|
that goes to make a man, I had been overshadowed from the first.
|
|
And now I was coming into my own. I warmed at the thought.
|
|
Alas! for the pride which goes before a fall! That little glow of
|
|
self-satisfaction, that added measure of self-confidence, were to lead
|
|
me on that very night to the most dreadful experience of my life,
|
|
ending with a shock which turns my heart sick when I think of it.
|
|
|
|
It came about in this way. I had been unduly excited by the adventure
|
|
of the tree, and sleep seemed to be impossible. Summerlee was on guard,
|
|
sitting hunched over our small fire, a quaint, angular figure,
|
|
his rifle across his knees and his pointed, goat-like beard
|
|
wagging with each weary nod of his head. Lord John lay silent,
|
|
wrapped in the South American poncho which he wore, while Challenger
|
|
snored with a roll and rattle which reverberated through the woods.
|
|
The full moon was shining brightly, and the air was crisply cold.
|
|
What a night for a walk! And then suddenly came the thought,
|
|
"Why not?" Suppose I stole softly away, suppose I made my way down
|
|
to the central lake, suppose I was back at breakfast with some record
|
|
of the place--would I not in that case be thought an even more
|
|
worthy associate? Then, if Summerlee carried the day and some means
|
|
of escape were found, we should return to London with first-hand
|
|
knowledge of
|
|
the central mystery of the plateau, to which I alone, of all
|
|
men, would have penetrated. I thought of Gladys, with her "There are
|
|
heroisms all round us." I seemed to hear her voice as she said it.
|
|
I thought also of McArdle. What a three column article for the paper!
|
|
What a foundation for a career! A correspondentship in the next
|
|
great war might be within my reach. I clutched at a gun--my pockets
|
|
were full of cartridges--and, parting the thorn bushes at the gate
|
|
of our zareba, quickly slipped out. My last glance showed me
|
|
the unconscious Summerlee, most futile of sentinels, still nodding
|
|
away like a queer mechanical toy in front of the smouldering fire.
|
|
|
|
I had not gone a hundred yards before I deeply repented my rashness.
|
|
I may have said somewhere in this chronicle that I am too imaginative
|
|
to be a really courageous man, but that I have an overpowering fear
|
|
of seeming afraid. This was the power which now carried me onwards.
|
|
I simply could not slink back with nothing done. Even if my comrades
|
|
should not have missed me, and should never know of my weakness,
|
|
there would still remain some intolerable self-shame in my own soul.
|
|
And yet I shuddered at the position in which I found myself, and would
|
|
have given all I possessed at that moment to have been honorably free
|
|
of the whole business.
|
|
|
|
It was dreadful in the forest. The trees grew so thickly and their
|
|
foliage spread so widely that I could see nothing of the moon-light
|
|
save that here and there the high branches made a tangled filigree
|
|
against the starry sky. As the eyes became more used to the obscurity
|
|
one learned that there were different degrees of darkness among
|
|
the trees--that some were dimly visible, while between and among them
|
|
there were coal-black shadowed patches, like the mouths of caves,
|
|
from which I shrank in horror as I passed. I thought of the despairing
|
|
yell of the tortured iguanodon--that dreadful cry which had echoed
|
|
through the woods. I thought, too, of the glimpse I had in the light
|
|
of Lord John's torch of that bloated, warty, blood-slavering muzzle.
|
|
Even now I was on its hunting-ground. At any instant it might spring
|
|
upon me from the shadows--this nameless and horrible monster.
|
|
I stopped, and, picking a cartridge from my pocket, I opened the breech
|
|
of my gun. As I touched the lever my heart leaped within me.
|
|
It was the shot-gun, not the rifle, which I had taken!
|
|
|
|
Again the impulse to return swept over me. Here, surely, was a most
|
|
excellent reason for my failure--one for which no one would think
|
|
the less of me. But again the foolish pride fought against that
|
|
very word. I could not--must not--fail. After all, my rifle would
|
|
probably have been as useless as a shot-gun against such dangers
|
|
as I might meet. If I were to go back to camp to change my weapon I
|
|
could hardly expect to enter and to leave again without being seen.
|
|
In that case there would be explanations, and my attempt would no
|
|
longer be all my own. After a little hesitation, then, I screwed
|
|
up my courage and continued upon my way, my useless gun under my arm.
|
|
|
|
The darkness of the forest had been alarming, but even worse
|
|
was the white, still flood of moonlight in the open glade
|
|
of the iguanodons. Hid among the bushes, I looked out at it.
|
|
None of the great brutes were in sight. Perhaps the tragedy which had
|
|
befallen one of them had driven them from their feeding-ground. In
|
|
the misty, silvery night I could see no sign of any living thing.
|
|
Taking courage, therefore, I slipped rapidly across it, and among
|
|
the jungle on the farther side I picked up once again the brook
|
|
which was my guide. It was a cheery companion, gurgling and chuckling
|
|
as it ran, like the dear old trout-stream in the West Country where I
|
|
have fished at night in my boyhood. So long as I followed it down I
|
|
must come to the lake, and so long as I followed it back I must come
|
|
to the camp. Often I had to lose sight of it on account of the tangled
|
|
brush-wood, but I was always within earshot of its tinkle and splash.
|
|
|
|
As one descended the slope the woods became thinner, and bushes,
|
|
with occasional high trees, took the place of the forest.
|
|
I could make good progress, therefore, and I could see without
|
|
being seen. I passed close to the pterodactyl swamp, and as I
|
|
did so, with a dry, crisp, leathery rattle of wings, one of these
|
|
great creatures--it was twenty feet at least from tip to tip--
|
|
rose up from somewhere near me and soared into the air. As it
|
|
passed across the face of the moon the light shone clearly through
|
|
the membranous wings, and it looked like a flying skeleton against
|
|
the white, tropical radiance. I crouched low among the bushes,
|
|
for I knew from past experience that with a single cry the creature
|
|
could bring a hundred of its loathsome mates about my ears.
|
|
It was not until it had settled again that I dared to steal onwards
|
|
upon my journey.
|
|
|
|
The night had been exceedingly still, but as I advanced I became
|
|
conscious of a low, rumbling sound, a continuous murmur, somewhere in
|
|
front of me. This grew louder as I proceeded, until at last it
|
|
was clearly quite close to me. When I stood still the sound
|
|
was constant, so that it seemed to come from some stationary cause.
|
|
It was like a boiling kettle or the bubbling of some great pot.
|
|
Soon I came upon the source of it, for in the center of a small clearing
|
|
I found a lake--or a pool, rather, for it was not larger than the basin
|
|
of the Trafalgar Square fountain--of some black, pitch-like stuff,
|
|
the surface of which rose and fell in great blisters of bursting gas.
|
|
The air above it was shimmering with heat, and the ground round
|
|
was so hot that I could hardly bear to lay my hand on it. It was
|
|
clear that the great volcanic outburst which had raised this strange
|
|
plateau so many years ago had not yet entirely spent its forces.
|
|
Blackened rocks and mounds of lava I had already seen everywhere
|
|
peeping out from amid the luxuriant vegetation which draped them,
|
|
but this asphalt pool in the jungle was the first sign that we had
|
|
of actual existing activity on the slopes of the ancient crater.
|
|
I had no time to examine it further for I had need to hurry if I were
|
|
to be back in camp in the morning.
|
|
|
|
It was a fearsome walk, and one which will be with me so long
|
|
as memory holds. In the great moonlight clearings I slunk along
|
|
among the shadows on the margin. In the jungle I crept forward,
|
|
stopping with a beating heart whenever I heard, as I often did,
|
|
the crash of breaking branches as some wild beast went past.
|
|
Now and then great shadows loomed up for an instant and were gone--
|
|
great, silent shadows which seemed to prowl upon padded feet.
|
|
How often I stopped with the intention of returning, and yet every
|
|
time my pride conquered my fear, and sent me on again until my object
|
|
should be attained.
|
|
|
|
At last (my watch showed that it was one in the morning) I saw
|
|
the gleam of water amid the openings of the jungle, and ten minutes
|
|
later I was among the reeds upon the borders of the central lake.
|
|
I was exceedingly dry, so I lay down and took a long draught
|
|
of its waters, which were fresh and cold. There was a broad
|
|
pathway with many tracks upon it at the spot which I had found,
|
|
so that it was clearly one of the drinking-places of the animals.
|
|
Close to the water's edge there was a huge isolated block of lava.
|
|
Up this I climbed, and, lying on the top, I had an excellent view in
|
|
every direction.
|
|
|
|
The first thing which I saw filled me with amazement. When I
|
|
described the view from the summit of the great tree, I said that on
|
|
the farther cliff I could see a number of dark spots, which appeared
|
|
to be the mouths of caves. Now, as I looked up at the same cliffs,
|
|
I saw discs of light in every direction, ruddy, clearly-defined patches,
|
|
like the port-holes of a liner in the darkness. For a moment I
|
|
thought it was the lava-glow from some volcanic action; but this could
|
|
not be so. Any volcanic action would surely be down in the hollow
|
|
and not high among the rocks. What, then, was the alternative?
|
|
It was wonderful, and yet it must surely be. These ruddy spots
|
|
must be the reflection of fires within the caves--fires which could
|
|
only be lit by the hand of man. There were human beings, then,
|
|
upon the plateau. How gloriously my expedition was justified!
|
|
Here was news indeed for us to bear back with us to London!
|
|
|
|
For a long time I lay and watched these red, quivering blotches
|
|
of light. I suppose they were ten miles off from me, yet even
|
|
at that distance one could observe how, from time to time,
|
|
they twinkled or were obscured as someone passed before them.
|
|
What would I not have given to be able to crawl up to them, to peep in,
|
|
and to take back some word to my comrades as to the appearance
|
|
and character of the race who lived in so strange a place!
|
|
It was out of the question for the moment, and yet surely we could
|
|
not leave the plateau until we had some definite knowledge upon
|
|
the point.
|
|
|
|
Lake Gladys--my own lake--lay like a sheet of quicksilver before me,
|
|
with a reflected moon shining brightly in the center of it.
|
|
It was shallow, for in many places I saw low sandbanks protruding
|
|
above the water. Everywhere upon the still surface I could see
|
|
signs of life, sometimes mere rings and ripples in the water,
|
|
sometimes the gleam of a great silver-sided fish in the air,
|
|
sometimes the arched, slate-colored back of some passing monster.
|
|
Once upon a yellow sandbank I saw a creature like a huge swan, with a
|
|
clumsy body and a high, flexible neck, shuffling about upon the margin.
|
|
Presently it plunged in, and for some time I could see the arched
|
|
neck and darting head undulating over the water. Then it dived,
|
|
and I saw it no more.
|
|
|
|
My attention was soon drawn away from these distant sights and brought
|
|
back to what was going on at my very feet. Two creatures like large
|
|
armadillos had come down to the drinking-place, and were squatting at
|
|
the edge of the water, their long, flexible tongues like red ribbons
|
|
shooting in and out as they lapped. A huge deer, with branching horns,
|
|
a magnificent creature which carried itself like a king, came down
|
|
with its doe and two fawns and drank beside the armadillos.
|
|
No such deer exist anywhere else upon earth, for the moose or elks
|
|
which I have seen would hardly have reached its shoulders.
|
|
Presently it gave a warning snort, and was off with its family
|
|
among the reeds, while the armadillos also scuttled for shelter.
|
|
A new-comer, a most monstrous animal, was coming down the path.
|
|
|
|
For a moment I wondered where I could have seen that ungainly shape,
|
|
that arched back with triangular fringes along it, that strange
|
|
bird-like head held close to the ground. Then it came back, to me.
|
|
It was the stegosaurus--the very creature which Maple White
|
|
had preserved in his sketch-book, and which had been the first
|
|
object which arrested the attention of Challenger! There he was--
|
|
perhaps the very specimen which the American artist had encountered.
|
|
The ground shook beneath his tremendous weight, and his gulpings
|
|
of water resounded through the still night. For five minutes he
|
|
was so close to my rock that by stretching out my hand I could have
|
|
touched the hideous waving hackles upon his back. Then he lumbered
|
|
away and was lost among the boulders.
|
|
|
|
Looking at my watch, I saw that it was half-past two o'clock,
|
|
and high time, therefore, that I started upon my homeward journey.
|
|
There was no difficulty about the direction in which I should return
|
|
for all along I had kept the little brook upon my left, and it
|
|
opened into the central lake within a stone's-throw of the boulder
|
|
upon which I had been lying. I set off, therefore, in high spirits,
|
|
for I felt that I had done good work and was bringing back a fine
|
|
budget of news for my companions. Foremost of all, of course,
|
|
were the sight of the fiery caves and the certainty that some
|
|
troglodytic race inhabited them. But besides that I could speak
|
|
from experience of the central lake. I could testify that it
|
|
was full of strange creatures, and I had seen several land forms
|
|
of primeval life which we had not before encountered. I reflected
|
|
as I walked that few men in the world could have spent a stranger
|
|
night or added more to human knowledge in the course of it.
|
|
|
|
I was plodding up the slope, turning these thoughts over in my mind,
|
|
and had reached a point which may have been half-way to home,
|
|
when my mind was brought back to my own position by a strange
|
|
noise behind me. It was something between a snore and a growl,
|
|
low, deep, and exceedingly menacing. Some strange creature
|
|
was evidently near me, but nothing could be seen, so I hastened
|
|
more rapidly upon my way. I had traversed half a mile or so when
|
|
suddenly the sound was repeated, still behind me, but louder and
|
|
more menacing than before. My heart stood still within me as it
|
|
flashed across me that the beast, whatever it was, must surely
|
|
be after ME. My skin grew cold and my hair rose at the thought.
|
|
That these monsters should tear each other to pieces was a part
|
|
of the strange struggle for existence, but that they should turn
|
|
upon modern man, that they should deliberately track and hunt down
|
|
the predominant human, was a staggering and fearsome thought.
|
|
I remembered again the blood-beslobbered face which we had seen
|
|
in the glare of Lord John's torch, like some horrible vision from
|
|
the deepest circle of Dante's hell. With my knees shaking beneath me,
|
|
I stood and glared with starting eyes down the moonlit path which lay
|
|
behind me. All was quiet as in a dream landscape. Silver clearings
|
|
and the black patches of the bushes--nothing else could I see.
|
|
Then from out of the silence, imminent and threatening, there came once
|
|
more that low, throaty croaking, far louder and closer than before.
|
|
There could no longer be a doubt. Something was on my trail,
|
|
and was closing in upon me every minute.
|
|
|
|
I stood like a man paralyzed, still staring at the ground which I
|
|
had traversed. Then suddenly I saw it. There was movement among
|
|
the bushes at the far end of the clearing which I had just traversed.
|
|
A great dark shadow disengaged itself and hopped out into the
|
|
clear moonlight. I say "hopped" advisedly, for the beast moved
|
|
like a kangaroo, springing along in an erect position upon its
|
|
powerful hind legs, while its front ones were held bent in front
|
|
of it. It was of enormous size and power, like an erect elephant,
|
|
but its movements, in spite of its bulk, were exceedingly alert.
|
|
For a moment, as I saw its shape, I hoped that it was an iguanodon,
|
|
which I knew to be harmless, but, ignorant as I was, I soon saw
|
|
that this was a very different creature. Instead of the gentle,
|
|
deer-shaped head of the great three-toed leaf-eater, this beast had
|
|
a broad, squat, toad-like face like that which had alarmed us in our camp.
|
|
His ferocious cry and the horrible energy of his pursuit both assured
|
|
me that this was surely one of the great flesh-eating dinosaurs,
|
|
the most terrible beasts which have ever walked this earth.
|
|
As the huge brute loped along it dropped forward upon its fore-paws
|
|
and brought its nose to the ground every twenty yards or so. It was
|
|
smelling out my trail. Sometimes, for an instant, it was at fault.
|
|
Then it would catch it up again and come bounding swiftly along
|
|
the path I had taken.
|
|
|
|
Even now when I think of that nightmare the sweat breaks out upon
|
|
my brow. What could I do? My useless fowling-piece was in my hand.
|
|
What help could I get from that? I looked desperately round for
|
|
some rock or tree, but I was in a bushy jungle with nothing higher
|
|
than a sapling within sight, while I knew that the creature behind
|
|
me could tear down an ordinary tree as though it were a reed.
|
|
My only possible chance lay in flight. I could not move swiftly
|
|
over the rough, broken ground, but as I looked round me in despair I
|
|
saw a well-marked, hard-beaten path which ran across in front of me.
|
|
We had seen several of the sort, the runs of various wild beasts,
|
|
during our expeditions. Along this I could perhaps hold my own,
|
|
for I was a fast runner, and in excellent condition. Flinging away
|
|
my useless gun, I set myself to do such a half-mile as I have
|
|
never done before or since. My limbs ached, my chest heaved,
|
|
I felt that my throat would burst for want of air, and yet with
|
|
that horror behind me I ran and I ran and ran. At last I paused,
|
|
hardly able to move. For a moment I thought that I had thrown him off.
|
|
The path lay still behind me. And then suddenly, with a crashing
|
|
and a rending, a thudding of giant feet and a panting of monster
|
|
lungs the beast was upon me once more. He was at my very heels.
|
|
I was lost.
|
|
|
|
Madman that I was to linger so long before I fled! Up to then he had
|
|
hunted by scent, and his movement was slow. But he had actually seen
|
|
me as I started to run. From then onwards he had hunted by sight,
|
|
for the path showed him where I had gone. Now, as he came round
|
|
the curve, he was springing in great bounds. The moonlight shone upon
|
|
his huge projecting eyes, the row of enormous teeth in his open mouth,
|
|
and the gleaming fringe of claws upon his short, powerful forearms.
|
|
With a scream of terror I turned and rushed wildly down the path.
|
|
Behind me the thick, gasping breathing of the creature sounded
|
|
louder and louder. His heavy footfall was beside me. Every instant
|
|
I expected to feel his grip upon my back. And then suddenly there
|
|
came a crash--I was falling through space, and everything beyond
|
|
was darkness and rest.
|
|
|
|
As I emerged from my unconsciousness--which could not, I think,
|
|
have lasted more than a few minutes--I was aware of a most dreadful
|
|
and penetrating smell. Putting out my hand in the darkness I came
|
|
upon something which felt like a huge lump of meat, while my other
|
|
hand closed upon a large bone. Up above me there was a circle
|
|
of starlit sky, which showed me that I was lying at the bottom
|
|
of a deep pit. Slowly I staggered to my feet and felt myself
|
|
all over. I was stiff and sore from head to foot, but there
|
|
was no limb which would not move, no joint which would not bend.
|
|
As the circumstances of my fall came back into my confused brain,
|
|
I looked up in terror, expecting to see that dreadful head silhouetted
|
|
against the paling sky. There was no sign of the monster, however,
|
|
nor could I hear any sound from above. I began to walk slowly round,
|
|
therefore, feeling in every direction to find out what this strange
|
|
place could be into which I had been so opportunely precipitated.
|
|
|
|
It was, as I have said, a pit, with sharply-sloping walls and a level
|
|
bottom about twenty feet across. This bottom was littered with great
|
|
gobbets of flesh, most of which was in the last state of putridity.
|
|
The atmosphere was poisonous and horrible. After tripping and stumbling
|
|
over these lumps of decay, I came suddenly against something hard,
|
|
and I found that an upright post was firmly fixed in the center
|
|
of the hollow. It was so high that I could not reach the top
|
|
of it with my hand, and it appeared to be covered with grease.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly I remembered that I had a tin box of wax-vestas in my pocket.
|
|
Striking one of them, I was able at last to form some opinion
|
|
of this place into which I had fallen. There could be no question
|
|
as to its nature. It was a trap--made by the hand of man. The post
|
|
in the center, some nine feet long, was sharpened at the upper end,
|
|
and was black with the stale blood of the creatures who had been impaled
|
|
upon it. The remains scattered about were fragments of the victims,
|
|
which had been cut away in order to clear the stake for the next
|
|
who might blunder in. I remembered that Challenger had declared
|
|
that man could not exist upon the plateau, since with his feeble
|
|
weapons he could not hold his own against the monsters who roamed
|
|
over it. But now it was clear enough how it could be done.
|
|
In their narrow-mouthed caves the natives, whoever they might be,
|
|
had refuges into which the huge saurians could not penetrate,
|
|
while with their developed brains they were capable of setting
|
|
such traps, covered with branches, across the paths which marked
|
|
the run of the animals as would destroy them in spite of all their
|
|
strength and activity. Man was always the master.
|
|
|
|
The sloping wall of the pit was not difficult for an active man
|
|
to climb, but I hesitated long before I trusted myself within
|
|
reach of the dreadful creature which had so nearly destroyed me.
|
|
How did I know that he was not lurking in the nearest clump of bushes,
|
|
waiting for my reappearance? I took heart, however, as I recalled
|
|
a conversation between Challenger and Summerlee upon the habits
|
|
of the great saurians. Both were agreed that the monsters were
|
|
practically brainless, that there was no room for reason in their tiny
|
|
cranial cavities, and that if they have disappeared from the rest
|
|
of the world it was assuredly on account of their own stupidity,
|
|
which made it impossible for them to adapt themselves to changing conditions.
|
|
|
|
To lie in wait for me now would mean that the creature had appreciated
|
|
what had happened to me, and this in turn would argue some power
|
|
connecting cause and effect. Surely it was more likely that a
|
|
brainless creature, acting solely by vague predatory instinct,
|
|
would give up the chase when I disappeared, and, after a pause
|
|
of astonishment, would wander away in search of some other prey?
|
|
I clambered to the edge of the pit and looked over. The stars
|
|
were fading, the sky was whitening, and the cold wind of morning blew
|
|
pleasantly upon my face. I could see or hear nothing of my enemy.
|
|
Slowly I climbed out and sat for a while upon the ground,
|
|
ready to spring back into my refuge if any danger should appear.
|
|
Then, reassured by the absolute stillness and by the growing light,
|
|
I took my courage in both hands and stole back along the path
|
|
which I had come. Some distance down it I picked up my gun,
|
|
and shortly afterwards struck the brook which was my guide.
|
|
So, with many a frightened backward glance, I made for home.
|
|
|
|
And suddenly there came something to remind me of my absent companions.
|
|
In the clear, still morning air there sounded far away the sharp,
|
|
hard note of a single rifle-shot. I paused and listened, but there
|
|
was nothing more. For a moment I was shocked at the thought that some
|
|
sudden danger might have befallen them. But then a simpler and more
|
|
natural explanation came to my mind. It was now broad daylight.
|
|
No doubt my absence had been noticed. They had imagined, that I
|
|
was lost in the woods, and had fired this shot to guide me home.
|
|
It is true that we had made a strict resolution against firing,
|
|
but if it seemed to them that I might be in danger they would
|
|
not hesitate. It was for me now to hurry on as fast as possible,
|
|
and so to reassure them.
|
|
|
|
I was weary and spent, so my progress was not so fast as I wished;
|
|
but at last I came into regions which I knew. There was the swamp
|
|
of the pterodactyls upon my left; there in front of me was the glade
|
|
of the iguanodons. Now I was in the last belt of trees which
|
|
separated me from Fort Challenger. I raised my voice in a cheery
|
|
shout to allay their fears. No answering greeting came back to me.
|
|
My heart sank at that ominous stillness. I quickened my pace
|
|
into a run. The zareba rose before me, even as I had left it,
|
|
but the gate was open. I rushed in. In the cold, morning light it
|
|
was a fearful sight which met my eyes. Our effects were scattered
|
|
in wild confusion over the ground; my comrades had disappeared,
|
|
and close to the smouldering ashes of our fire the grass was stained
|
|
crimson with a hideous pool of blood.
|
|
|
|
I was so stunned by this sudden shock that for a time I must
|
|
have nearly lost my reason. I have a vague recollection, as one
|
|
remembers a bad dream, of rushing about through the woods all round
|
|
the empty camp, calling wildly for my companions. No answer came
|
|
back from the silent shadows. The horrible thought that I might
|
|
never see them again, that I might find myself abandoned all alone
|
|
in that dreadful place, with no possible way of descending into
|
|
the world below, that I might live and die in that nightmare country,
|
|
drove me to desperation. I could have torn my hair and beaten my head
|
|
in my despair. Only now did I realize how I had learned to lean
|
|
upon my companions, upon the serene self-confidence of Challenger,
|
|
and upon the masterful, humorous coolness of Lord John Roxton.
|
|
Without them I was like a child in the dark, helpless and powerless.
|
|
I did not know which way to turn or what I should do first.
|
|
|
|
After a period, during which I sat in bewilderment, I set myself
|
|
to try and discover what sudden misfortune could have befallen
|
|
my companions. The whole disordered appearance of the camp showed
|
|
that there had been some sort of attack, and the rifle-shot no doubt
|
|
marked the time when it had occurred. That there should have been
|
|
only one shot showed that it had been all over in an instant.
|
|
The rifles still lay upon the ground, and one of them--Lord John's--
|
|
had the empty cartridge in the breech. The blankets of Challenger
|
|
and of Summerlee beside the fire suggested that they had been
|
|
asleep at the time. The cases of ammunition and of food were
|
|
scattered about in a wild litter, together with our unfortunate
|
|
cameras and plate-carriers, but none of them were missing.
|
|
On the other hand, all the exposed provisions--and I remembered
|
|
that there were a considerable quantity of them--were gone.
|
|
They were animals, then, and not natives, who had made the inroad,
|
|
for surely the latter would have left nothing behind.
|
|
|
|
But if animals, or some single terrible animal, then what had become
|
|
of my comrades? A ferocious beast would surely have destroyed them
|
|
and left their remains. It is true that there was that one hideous
|
|
pool of blood, which told of violence. Such a monster as had pursued
|
|
me during the night could have carried away a victim as easily as a cat
|
|
would a mouse. In that case the others would have followed in pursuit.
|
|
But then they would assuredly have taken their rifles with them.
|
|
The more I tried to think it out with my confused and weary brain
|
|
the less could I find any plausible explanation. I searched
|
|
round in the forest, but could see no tracks which could help me
|
|
to a conclusion. Once I lost myself, and it was only by good luck,
|
|
and after an hour of wandering, that I found the camp once more.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly a thought came to me and brought some little comfort to
|
|
my heart. I was not absolutely alone in the world. Down at the bottom
|
|
of the cliff, and within call of me, was waiting the faithful Zambo.
|
|
I went to the edge of the plateau and looked over. Sure enough,
|
|
he was squatting among his blankets beside his fire in his little camp.
|
|
But, to my amazement, a second man was seated in front of him.
|
|
For an instant my heart leaped for joy, as I thought that one
|
|
of my comrades had made his way safely down. But a second glance
|
|
dispelled the hope. The rising sun shone red upon the man's skin.
|
|
He was an Indian. I shouted loudly and waved my handkerchief.
|
|
Presently Zambo looked up, waved his hand, and turned to ascend
|
|
the pinnacle. In a short time he was standing close to me and
|
|
listening with deep distress to the story which I told him.
|
|
|
|
"Devil got them for sure, Massa Malone," said he. "You got
|
|
into the devil's country, sah, and he take you all to himself.
|
|
You take advice, Massa Malone, and come down quick, else he get you
|
|
as well."
|
|
|
|
"How can I come down, Zambo?"
|
|
|
|
"You get creepers from trees, Massa Malone. Throw them over here.
|
|
I make fast to this stump, and so you have bridge."
|
|
|
|
"We have thought of that. There are no creepers here which could
|
|
bear us."
|
|
|
|
"Send for ropes, Massa Malone."
|
|
|
|
"Who can I send, and where?"
|
|
|
|
"Send to Indian villages, sah. Plenty hide rope in Indian village.
|
|
Indian down below; send him."
|
|
|
|
"Who is he?
|
|
|
|
"One of our Indians. Other ones beat him and take away his pay.
|
|
He come back to us. Ready now to take letter, bring rope,--anything."
|
|
|
|
To take a letter! Why not? Perhaps he might bring help; but in any
|
|
case he would ensure that our lives were not spent for nothing,
|
|
and that news of all that we had won for Science should reach our
|
|
friends at home. I had two completed letters already waiting.
|
|
I would spend the day in writing a third, which would bring my experiences
|
|
absolutely up to date. The Indian could bear this back to the world.
|
|
I ordered Zambo, therefore, to come again in the evening, and I
|
|
spent my miserable and lonely day in recording my own adventures
|
|
of the night before. I also drew up a note, to be given to any white
|
|
merchant or captain of a steam-boat whom the Indian could find,
|
|
imploring them to see that ropes were sent to us, since our lives must
|
|
depend upon it. These documents I threw to Zambo in the evening,
|
|
and also my purse, which contained three English sovereigns.
|
|
These were to be given to the Indian, and he was promised twice
|
|
as much if he returned with the ropes.
|
|
|
|
So now you will understand, my dear Mr. McArdle, how this communication
|
|
reaches you, and you will also know the truth, in case you never
|
|
hear again from your unfortunate correspondent. To-night I am
|
|
too weary and too depressed to make my plans. To-morrow I must
|
|
think out some way by which I shall keep in touch with this camp,
|
|
and yet search round for any traces of my unhappy friends.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII
|
|
|
|
"A Sight which I shall Never Forget"
|
|
|
|
Just as the sun was setting upon that melancholy night I
|
|
saw the lonely figure of the Indian upon the vast plain
|
|
beneath me, and I watched him, our one faint hope of salvation,
|
|
until he disappeared in the rising mists of evening which lay,
|
|
rose-tinted from the setting sun, between the far-off river and me.
|
|
|
|
It was quite dark when I at last turned back to our stricken camp,
|
|
and my last vision as I went was the red gleam of Zambo's fire,
|
|
the one point of light in the wide world below, as was his faithful
|
|
presence in my own shadowed soul. And yet I felt happier than I
|
|
had done since this crushing blow had fallen upon me, for it
|
|
was good to think that the world should know what we had done,
|
|
so that at the worst our names should not perish with our bodies,
|
|
but should go down to posterity associated with the result of
|
|
our labors.
|
|
|
|
It was an awesome thing to sleep in that ill-fated camp; and yet it
|
|
was even more unnerving to do so in the jungle. One or the other it
|
|
must be. Prudence, on the one hand, warned me that I should remain
|
|
on guard, but exhausted Nature, on the other, declared that I should
|
|
do nothing of the kind. I climbed up on to a limb of the great
|
|
gingko tree, but there was no secure perch on its rounded surface,
|
|
and I should certainly have fallen off and broken my neck the moment
|
|
I began to doze. I got down, therefore, and pondered over what I
|
|
should do. Finally, I closed the door of the zareba, lit three
|
|
separate fires in a triangle, and having eaten a hearty supper dropped
|
|
off into a profound sleep, from which I had a strange and most
|
|
welcome awakening. In the early morning, just as day was breaking,
|
|
a hand was laid upon my arm, and starting up, with all my nerves
|
|
in a tingle and my hand feeling for a rifle, I gave a cry of joy
|
|
as in the cold gray light I saw Lord John Roxton kneeling beside me.
|
|
|
|
It was he--and yet it was not he. I had left him calm in his bearing,
|
|
correct in his person, prim in his dress. Now he was pale and
|
|
wild-eyed, gasping as he breathed like one who has run far and fast.
|
|
His gaunt face was scratched and bloody, his clothes were hanging
|
|
in rags, and his hat was gone. I stared in amazement, but he
|
|
gave me no chance for questions. He was grabbing at our stores
|
|
all the time he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Quick, young fellah! Quick!" he cried. "Every moment counts.
|
|
Get the rifles, both of them. I have the other two. Now, all the
|
|
cartridges you can gather. Fill up your pockets. Now, some food.
|
|
Half a dozen tins will do. That's all right! Don't wait to talk
|
|
or think. Get a move on, or we are done!"
|
|
|
|
Still half-awake, and unable to imagine what it all might mean,
|
|
I found myself hurrying madly after him through the wood,
|
|
a rifle under each arm and a pile of various stores in my hands.
|
|
He dodged in and out through the thickest of the scrub until
|
|
he came to a dense clump of brush-wood. Into this he rushed,
|
|
regardless of thorns, and threw himself into the heart of it,
|
|
pulling me down by his side.
|
|
|
|
"There!" he panted. "I think we are safe here. They'll make
|
|
for the camp as sure as fate. It will be their first idea.
|
|
But this should puzzle 'em."
|
|
|
|
"What is it all?" I asked, when I had got my breath. "Where are
|
|
the professors? And who is it that is after us?"
|
|
|
|
"The ape-men," he cried. "My God, what brutes! Don't raise your voice,
|
|
for they have long ears--sharp eyes, too, but no power of scent,
|
|
so far as I could judge, so I don't think they can sniff us out.
|
|
Where have you been, young fellah? You were well out of it."
|
|
|
|
In a few sentences I whispered what I had done.
|
|
|
|
"Pretty bad," said he, when he had heard of the dinosaur and the pit.
|
|
"It isn't quite the place for a rest cure. What? But I had no idea
|
|
what its possibilities were until those devils got hold of us.
|
|
The man-eatin' Papuans had me once, but they are Chesterfields
|
|
compared to this crowd."
|
|
|
|
"How did it happen?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"It was in the early mornin'. Our learned friends were just stirrin'.
|
|
Hadn't even begun to argue yet. Suddenly it rained apes. They came
|
|
down as thick as apples out of a tree. They had been assemblin'
|
|
in the dark, I suppose, until that great tree over our heads was
|
|
heavy with them. I shot one of them through the belly, but before
|
|
we knew where we were they had us spread-eagled on our backs.
|
|
I call them apes, but they carried sticks and stones in their hands
|
|
and jabbered talk to each other, and ended up by tyin' our hands
|
|
with creepers, so they are ahead of any beast that I have seen in my
|
|
wanderin's. Ape-men--that's what they are--Missin' Links, and I wish
|
|
they had stayed missin'. They carried off their wounded comrade--
|
|
he was bleedin' like a pig--and then they sat around us, and if ever
|
|
I saw frozen murder it was in their faces. They were big fellows,
|
|
as big as a man and a deal stronger. Curious glassy gray eyes
|
|
they have, under red tufts, and they just sat and gloated and gloated.
|
|
Challenger is no chicken, but even he was cowed. He managed to
|
|
struggle to his feet, and yelled out at them to have done with it
|
|
and get it over. I think he had gone a bit off his head at the
|
|
suddenness of it, for he raged and cursed at them like a lunatic.
|
|
If they had been a row of his favorite Pressmen he could not have
|
|
slanged them worse."
|
|
|
|
"Well, what did they do?" I was enthralled by the strange story
|
|
which my companion was whispering into my ear, while all the time
|
|
his keen eyes were shooting in every direction and his hand grasping
|
|
his cocked rifle.
|
|
|
|
"I thought it was the end of us, but instead of that it started
|
|
them on a new line. They all jabbered and chattered together.
|
|
Then one of them stood out beside Challenger. You'll smile,
|
|
young fellah, but 'pon my word they might have been kinsmen.
|
|
I couldn't have believed it if I hadn't seen it with my own eyes.
|
|
This old ape-man--he was their chief--was a sort of red Challenger,
|
|
with every one of our friend's beauty points, only just a trifle
|
|
more so. He had the short body, the big shoulders, the round chest,
|
|
no neck, a great ruddy frill of a beard, the tufted eyebrows,
|
|
the `What do you want, damn you!' look about the eyes,
|
|
and the whole catalogue. When the ape-man stood by Challenger
|
|
and put his paw on his shoulder, the thing was complete.
|
|
Summerlee was a bit hysterical, and he laughed till he cried.
|
|
The ape-men laughed too--or at least they put up the devil of
|
|
a cacklin'--and they set to work to drag us off through the forest.
|
|
They wouldn't touch the guns and things--thought them dangerous,
|
|
I expect--but they carried away all our loose food. Summerlee and I
|
|
got some rough handlin' on the way--there's my skin and my clothes
|
|
to prove it--for they took us a bee-line through the brambles,
|
|
and their own hides are like leather. But Challenger was all right.
|
|
Four of them carried him shoulder high, and he went like a Roman emperor.
|
|
What's that?"
|
|
|
|
It was a strange clicking noise in the distance not unlike castanets.
|
|
|
|
"There they go!" said my companion, slipping cartridges into
|
|
the second double barrelled "Express." "Load them all up,
|
|
young fellah my lad, for we're not going to be taken alive, and don't
|
|
you think it! That's the row they make when they are excited.
|
|
By George! they'll have something to excite them if they put us up.
|
|
The `Last Stand of the Grays' won't be in it. `With their rifles
|
|
grasped in their stiffened hands, mid a ring of the dead and dyin','
|
|
as some fathead sings. Can you hear them now?"
|
|
|
|
"Very far away."
|
|
|
|
"That little lot will do no good, but I expect their search parties
|
|
are all over the wood. Well, I was telling you my tale of woe.
|
|
They got us soon to this town of theirs--about a thousand huts
|
|
of branches and leaves in a great grove of trees near the edge
|
|
of the cliff. It's three or four miles from here. The filthy
|
|
beasts fingered me all over, and I feel as if I should never be
|
|
clean again. They tied us up--the fellow who handled me could tie
|
|
like a bosun--and there we lay with our toes up, beneath a tree,
|
|
while a great brute stood guard over us with a club in his hand.
|
|
When I say `we' I mean Summerlee and myself. Old Challenger
|
|
was up a tree, eatin' pines and havin' the time of his life.
|
|
I'm bound to say that he managed to get some fruit to us, and with
|
|
his own hands he loosened our bonds. If you'd seen him sitting
|
|
up in that tree hob-nobbin' with his twin brother--and singin'
|
|
in that rollin' bass of his, `Ring out, wild bells,' cause music
|
|
of any kind seemed to put 'em in a good humor, you'd have smiled;
|
|
but we weren't in much mood for laughin', as you can guess.
|
|
They were inclined, within limits, to let him do what he liked,
|
|
but they drew the line pretty sharply at us. It was a mighty
|
|
consolation to us all to know that you were runnin' loose and had
|
|
the archives in your keepin'.
|
|
|
|
"Well, now, young fellah, I'll tell you what will surprise you.
|
|
You say you saw signs of men, and fires, traps, and the like.
|
|
Well, we have seen the natives themselves. Poor devils they were,
|
|
down-faced little chaps, and had enough to make them so.
|
|
It seems that the humans hold one side of this plateau--over yonder,
|
|
where you saw the caves--and the ape-men hold this side, and there
|
|
is bloody war between them all the time. That's the situation,
|
|
so far as I could follow it. Well, yesterday the ape-men got
|
|
hold of a dozen of the humans and brought them in as prisoners.
|
|
You never heard such a jabberin' and shriekin' in your life. The men
|
|
were little red fellows, and had been bitten and clawed so that they
|
|
could hardly walk. The ape-men put two of them to death there and then--
|
|
fairly pulled the arm off one of them--it was perfectly beastly.
|
|
Plucky little chaps they are, and hardly gave a squeak. But it
|
|
turned us absolutely sick. Summerlee fainted, and even Challenger
|
|
had as much as he could stand. I think they have cleared,
|
|
don't you?"
|
|
|
|
We listened intently, but nothing save the calling of the birds broke
|
|
the deep peace of the forest. Lord Roxton went on with his story.
|
|
|
|
"I Think you have had the escape of your life, young fellah my lad.
|
|
It was catchin' those Indians that put you clean out of their heads,
|
|
else they would have been back to the camp for you as sure
|
|
as fate and gathered you in. Of course, as you said, they have
|
|
been watchin' us from the beginnin' out of that tree, and they
|
|
knew perfectly well that we were one short. However, they could
|
|
think only of this new haul; so it was I, and not a bunch of apes,
|
|
that dropped in on you in the morning. Well, we had a horrid
|
|
business afterwards. My God! what a nightmare the whole thing is!
|
|
You remember the great bristle of sharp canes down below where we
|
|
found the skeleton of the American? Well, that is just under
|
|
ape-town, and that's the jumpin'-off place of their prisoners.
|
|
I expect there's heaps of skeletons there, if we looked for 'em.
|
|
They have a sort of clear parade-ground on the top, and they make
|
|
a proper ceremony about it. One by one the poor devils have to jump,
|
|
and the game is to see whether they are merely dashed to pieces or
|
|
whether they get skewered on the canes. They took us out to see it,
|
|
and the whole tribe lined up on the edge. Four of the Indians jumped,
|
|
and the canes went through 'em like knittin' needles through a pat
|
|
of butter. No wonder we found that poor Yankee's skeleton with
|
|
the canes growin' between his ribs. It was horrible--but it was
|
|
doocedly interestin' too. We were all fascinated to see them take
|
|
the dive, even when we thought it would be our turn next on the
|
|
spring-board.
|
|
|
|
"Well, it wasn't. They kept six of the Indians up for to-day--
|
|
that's how I understood it--but I fancy we were to be the star
|
|
performers in the show. Challenger might get off, but Summerlee
|
|
and I were in the bill. Their language is more than half signs,
|
|
and it was not hard to follow them. So I thought it was time
|
|
we made a break for it. I had been plottin' it out a bit,
|
|
and had one or two things clear in my mind. It was all on me,
|
|
for Summerlee was useless and Challenger not much better.
|
|
The only time they got together they got slangin' because they
|
|
couldn't agree upon the scientific classification of these red-headed
|
|
devils that had got hold of us. One said it was the dryopithecus
|
|
of Java, the other said it was pithecanthropus. Madness, I call it--
|
|
Loonies, both. But, as I say, I had thought out one or two points
|
|
that were helpful. One was that these brutes could not run as fast
|
|
as a man in the open. They have short, bandy legs, you see,
|
|
and heavy bodies. Even Challenger could give a few yards in a hundred
|
|
to the best of them, and you or I would be a perfect Shrubb.
|
|
Another point was that they knew nothin' about guns. I don't believe
|
|
they ever understood how the fellow I shot came by his hurt.
|
|
If we could get at our guns there was no sayin' what we could do.
|
|
|
|
"So I broke away early this mornin', gave my guard a kick
|
|
in the tummy that laid him out, and sprinted for the camp.
|
|
There I got you and the guns, and here we are."
|
|
|
|
"But the professors!" I cried, in consternation.
|
|
|
|
"Well, we must just go back and fetch 'em. I couldn't bring 'em
|
|
with me. Challenger was up the tree, and Summerlee was not fit for
|
|
the effort. The only chance was to get the guns and try a rescue.
|
|
Of course they may scupper them at once in revenge. I don't think
|
|
they would touch Challenger, but I wouldn't answer for Summerlee.
|
|
But they would have had him in any case. Of that I am certain.
|
|
So I haven't made matters any worse by boltin'. But we are honor
|
|
bound to go back and have them out or see it through with them.
|
|
So you can make up your soul, young fellah my lad, for it will be one
|
|
way or the other before evenin'."
|
|
|
|
I have tried to imitate here Lord Roxton's jerky talk, his short,
|
|
strong sentences, the half-humorous, half-reckless tone that ran
|
|
through it all. But he was a born leader. As danger thickened
|
|
his jaunty manner would increase, his speech become more racy,
|
|
his cold eyes glitter into ardent life, and his Don Quixote moustache
|
|
bristle with joyous excitement. His love of danger, his intense
|
|
appreciation of the drama of an adventure--all the more intense
|
|
for being held tightly in--his consistent view that every peril
|
|
in life is a form of sport, a fierce game betwixt you and Fate,
|
|
with Death as a forfeit, made him a wonderful companion at such hours.
|
|
If it were not for our fears as to the fate of our companions,
|
|
it would have been a positive joy to throw myself with such a man
|
|
into such an affair. We were rising from our brushwood hiding-place
|
|
when suddenly I felt his grip upon my arm.
|
|
|
|
"By George!" he whispered, "here they come!"
|
|
|
|
From where we lay we could look down a brown aisle, arched with green,
|
|
formed by the trunks and branches. Along this a party of the
|
|
ape-men were passing. They went in single file, with bent legs
|
|
and rounded backs, their hands occasionally touching the ground,
|
|
their heads turning to left and right as they trotted along.
|
|
Their crouching gait took away from their height, but I should put
|
|
them at five feet or so, with long arms and enormous chests.
|
|
Many of them carried sticks, and at the distance they looked
|
|
like a line of very hairy and deformed human beings. For a moment
|
|
I caught this clear glimpse of them. Then they were lost among
|
|
the bushes.
|
|
|
|
"Not this time," said Lord John, who had caught up his rifle.
|
|
"Our best chance is to lie quiet until they have given up the search.
|
|
Then we shall see whether we can't get back to their town and hit 'em
|
|
where it hurts most. Give 'em an hour and we'll march."
|
|
|
|
We filled in the time by opening one of our food tins and making
|
|
sure of our breakfast. Lord Roxton had had nothing but some fruit
|
|
since the morning before and ate like a starving man. Then, at last,
|
|
our pockets bulging with cartridges and a rifle in each hand,
|
|
we started off upon our mission of rescue. Before leaving it we
|
|
carefully marked our little hiding-place among the brush-wood
|
|
and its bearing to Fort Challenger, that we might find it again
|
|
if we needed it. We slunk through the bushes in silence until
|
|
we came to the very edge of the cliff, close to the old camp.
|
|
There we halted, and Lord John gave me some idea of his plans.
|
|
|
|
"So long as we are among the thick trees these swine are our masters,
|
|
said he. They can see us and we cannot see them. But in the open
|
|
it is different. There we can move faster than they. So we must
|
|
stick to the open all we can. The edge of the plateau has fewer
|
|
large trees than further inland. So that's our line of advance.
|
|
Go slowly, keep your eyes open and your rifle ready. Above all,
|
|
never let them get you prisoner while there is a cartridge left--
|
|
that's my last word to you, young fellah."
|
|
|
|
When we reached the edge of the cliff I looked over and saw our
|
|
good old black Zambo sitting smoking on a rock below us. I would
|
|
have given a great deal to have hailed him and told him how we
|
|
were placed, but it was too dangerous, lest we should be heard.
|
|
The woods seemed to be full of the ape-men; again and again we heard
|
|
their curious clicking chatter. At such times we plunged into the
|
|
nearest clump of bushes and lay still until the sound had passed away.
|
|
Our advance, therefore, was very slow, and two hours at least must
|
|
have passed before I saw by Lord John's cautious movements that we
|
|
must be close to our destination. He motioned to me to lie still,
|
|
and he crawled forward himself. In a minute he was back again,
|
|
his face quivering with eagerness.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" said he. "Come quick! I hope to the Lord we are not too
|
|
late already!
|
|
|
|
I found myself shaking with nervous excitement as I scrambled
|
|
forward and lay down beside him, looking out through the bushes
|
|
at a clearing which stretched before us.
|
|
|
|
It was a sight which I shall never forget until my dying day--
|
|
so weird, so impossible, that I do not know how I am to make you
|
|
realize it, or how in a few years I shall bring myself to believe
|
|
in it if I live to sit once more on a lounge in the Savage Club
|
|
and look out on the drab solidity of the Embankment. I know that it
|
|
will seem then to be some wild nightmare, some delirium of fever.
|
|
Yet I will set it down now, while it is still fresh in my memory,
|
|
and one at least, the man who lay in the damp grasses by my side,
|
|
will know if I have lied.
|
|
|
|
A wide, open space lay before us--some hundreds of yards across--
|
|
all green turf and low bracken growing to the very edge of the cliff.
|
|
Round this clearing there was a semi-circle of trees with curious
|
|
huts built of foliage piled one above the other among the branches.
|
|
A rookery, with every nest a little house, would best convey the idea.
|
|
The openings of these huts and the branches of the trees were thronged
|
|
with a dense mob of ape-people, whom from their size I took to be
|
|
the females and infants of the tribe. They formed the background
|
|
of the picture, and were all looking out with eager interest at
|
|
the same scene which fascinated and bewildered us.
|
|
|
|
In the open, and near the edge of the cliff, there had assembled
|
|
a crowd of some hundred of these shaggy, red-haired creatures,
|
|
many of them of immense size, and all of them horrible to look upon.
|
|
There was a certain discipline among them, for none of them
|
|
attempted to break the line which had been formed. In front there
|
|
stood a small group of Indians--little, clean-limbed, red fellows,
|
|
whose skins glowed like polished bronze in the strong sunlight.
|
|
A tall, thin white man was standing beside them, his head bowed,
|
|
his arms folded, his whole attitude expressive of his horror
|
|
and dejection. There was no mistaking the angular form of
|
|
Professor Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
In front of and around this dejected group of prisoners were several
|
|
ape-men, who watched them closely and made all escape impossible.
|
|
Then, right out from all the others and close to the edge
|
|
of the cliff, were two figures, so strange, and under other
|
|
circumstances so ludicrous, that they absorbed my attention.
|
|
The one was our comrade, Professor Challenger. The remains of his
|
|
coat still hung in strips from his shoulders, but his shirt had been
|
|
all torn out, and his great beard merged itself in the black tangle
|
|
which covered his mighty chest. He had lost his hat, and his hair,
|
|
which had grown long in our wanderings, was flying in wild disorder.
|
|
A single day seemed to have changed him from the highest product
|
|
of modern civilization to the most desperate savage in South America.
|
|
Beside him stood his master, the king of the ape-men. In all things
|
|
he was, as Lord John had said, the very image of our Professor,
|
|
save that his coloring was red instead of black. The same short,
|
|
broad figure, the same heavy shoulders, the same forward hang of
|
|
the arms, the same bristling beard merging itself in the hairy chest.
|
|
Only above the eyebrows, where the sloping forehead and low,
|
|
curved skull of the ape-man were in sharp contrast to the broad
|
|
brow and magnificent cranium of the European, could one see any
|
|
marked difference. At every other point the king was an absurd
|
|
parody of the Professor.
|
|
|
|
All this, which takes me so long to describe, impressed itself upon
|
|
me in a few seconds. Then we had very different things to think of,
|
|
for an active drama was in progress. Two of the ape-men had seized
|
|
one of the Indians out of the group and dragged him forward to the edge
|
|
of the cliff. The king raised his hand as a signal. They caught
|
|
the man by his leg and arm, and swung him three times backwards and
|
|
forwards with tremendous violence. Then, with a frightful heave they
|
|
shot the poor wretch over the precipice. With such force did they
|
|
throw him that he curved high in the air before beginning to drop.
|
|
As he vanished from sight, the whole assembly, except the guards,
|
|
rushed forward to the edge of the precipice, and there was a long
|
|
pause of absolute silence, broken by a mad yell of delight.
|
|
They sprang about, tossing their long, hairy arms in the air
|
|
and howling with exultation. Then they fell back from the edge,
|
|
formed themselves again into line, and waited for the next victim.
|
|
|
|
This time it was Summerlee. Two of his guards caught him by the wrists
|
|
and pulled him brutally to the front. His thin figure and long limbs
|
|
struggled and fluttered like a chicken being dragged from a coop.
|
|
Challenger had turned to the king and waved his hands frantically
|
|
before him. He was begging, pleading, imploring for his comrade's life.
|
|
The ape-man pushed him roughly aside and shook his head.
|
|
It was the last conscious movement he was to make upon earth.
|
|
Lord John's rifle cracked, and the king sank down, a tangled red
|
|
sprawling thing, upon the ground.
|
|
|
|
"Shoot into the thick of them! Shoot! sonny, shoot!" cried my companion.
|
|
|
|
There are strange red depths in the soul of the most commonplace man.
|
|
I am tenderhearted by nature, and have found my eyes moist many
|
|
a time over the scream of a wounded hare. Yet the blood lust
|
|
was on me now. I found myself on my feet emptying one magazine,
|
|
then the other, clicking open the breech to re-load, snapping it
|
|
to again, while cheering and yelling with pure ferocity and joy
|
|
of slaughter as I did so. With our four guns the two of us made
|
|
a horrible havoc. Both the guards who held Summerlee were down,
|
|
and he was staggering about like a drunken man in his amazement,
|
|
unable to realize that he was a free man. The dense mob of ape-men
|
|
ran about in bewilderment, marveling whence this storm of death was
|
|
coming or what it might mean. They waved, gesticulated, screamed,
|
|
and tripped up over those who had fallen. Then, with a sudden impulse,
|
|
they all rushed in a howling crowd to the trees for shelter,
|
|
leaving the ground behind them spotted with their stricken comrades.
|
|
The prisoners were left for the moment standing alone in the middle
|
|
of the clearing.
|
|
|
|
Challenger's quick brain had grasped the situation. He seized
|
|
the bewildered Summerlee by the arm, and they both ran towards us.
|
|
Two of their guards bounded after them and fell to two bullets
|
|
from Lord John. We ran forward into the open to meet our friends,
|
|
and pressed a loaded rifle into the hands of each. But Summerlee
|
|
was at the end of his strength. He could hardly totter.
|
|
Already the ape-men were recovering from their panic. They were
|
|
coming through the brushwood and threatening to cut us off.
|
|
Challenger and I ran Summerlee along, one at each of his elbows,
|
|
while Lord John covered our retreat, firing again and again as savage
|
|
heads snarled at us out of the bushes. For a mile or more the chattering
|
|
brutes were at our very heels. Then the pursuit slackened, for they
|
|
learned our power and would no longer face that unerring rifle.
|
|
When we had at last reached the camp, we looked back and found
|
|
ourselves alone.
|
|
|
|
So it seemed to us; and yet we were mistaken. We had hardly closed
|
|
the thornbush door of our zareba, clasped each other's hands,
|
|
and thrown ourselves panting upon the ground beside our spring,
|
|
when we heard a patter of feet and then a gentle, plaintive crying
|
|
from outside our entrance. Lord Roxton rushed forward, rifle in hand,
|
|
and threw it open. There, prostrate upon their faces, lay the little
|
|
red figures of the four surviving Indians, trembling with fear
|
|
of us and yet imploring our protection. With an expressive
|
|
sweep of his hands one of them pointed to the woods around them,
|
|
and indicated that they were full of danger. Then, darting forward,
|
|
he threw his arms round Lord John's legs, and rested his face
|
|
upon them.
|
|
|
|
"By George!" cried our peer, pulling at his moustache in great
|
|
perplexity, "I say--what the deuce are we to do with these people?
|
|
Get up, little chappie, and take your face off my boots."
|
|
|
|
Summerlee was sitting up and stuffing some tobacco into his old briar.
|
|
|
|
"We've got to see them safe," said he. "You've pulled us all out
|
|
of the jaws of death. My word! it was a good bit of work!"
|
|
|
|
"Admirable!" cried Challenger. "Admirable! Not only we
|
|
as individuals, but European science collectively, owe you a deep
|
|
debt of gratitude for what you have done. I do not hesitate
|
|
to say that the disappearance of Professor Summerlee and myself
|
|
would have left an appreciable gap in modern zoological history.
|
|
Our young friend here and you have done most excellently well."
|
|
|
|
He beamed at us with the old paternal smile, but European science would
|
|
have been somewhat amazed could they have seen their chosen child,
|
|
the hope of the future, with his tangled, unkempt head, his bare chest,
|
|
and his tattered clothes. He had one of the meat-tins between
|
|
his knees, and sat with a large piece of cold Australian mutton
|
|
between his fingers. The Indian looked up at him, and then,
|
|
with a little yelp, cringed to the ground and clung to Lord John's leg.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you be scared, my bonnie boy," said Lord John,
|
|
patting the matted head in front of him. "He can't stick
|
|
your appearance, Challenger; and, by George! I don't wonder.
|
|
All right, little chap, he's only a human, just the same as the rest of us."
|
|
|
|
"Really, sir!" cried the Professor.
|
|
|
|
"Well, it's lucky for you, Challenger, that you ARE a little out
|
|
of the ordinary. If you hadn't been so like the king----"
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word, Lord John, you allow yourself great latitude."
|
|
|
|
"Well, it's a fact."
|
|
|
|
"I beg, sir, that you will change the subject. Your remarks are
|
|
irrelevant and unintelligible. The question before us is what are we
|
|
to do with these Indians? The obvious thing is to escort them home,
|
|
if we knew where their home was."
|
|
|
|
"There is no difficulty about that," said I. "They live in the caves
|
|
on the other side of the central lake."
|
|
|
|
"Our young friend here knows where they live. I gather that it
|
|
is some distance."
|
|
|
|
"A good twenty miles," said I.
|
|
|
|
Summerlee gave a groan.
|
|
|
|
"I, for one, could never get there. Surely I hear those brutes
|
|
still howling upon our track."
|
|
|
|
As he spoke, from the dark recesses of the woods we heard far
|
|
away the jabbering cry of the ape-men. The Indians once more set
|
|
up a feeble wail of fear.
|
|
|
|
"We must move, and move quick!" said Lord John. "You help Summerlee,
|
|
young fellah. These Indians will carry stores. Now, then, come along
|
|
before they can see us."
|
|
|
|
In less than half-an-hour we had reached our brushwood retreat and
|
|
concealed ourselves. All day we heard the excited calling of the ape-men
|
|
in the direction of our old camp, but none of them came our way,
|
|
and the tired fugitives, red and white, had a long, deep sleep.
|
|
I was dozing myself in the evening when someone plucked my sleeve,
|
|
and I found Challenger kneeling beside me.
|
|
|
|
"You keep a diary of these events, and you expect eventually
|
|
to publish it, Mr. Malone," said he, with solemnity.
|
|
|
|
"I am only here as a Press reporter," I answered.
|
|
|
|
"Exactly. You may have heard some rather fatuous remarks of
|
|
Lord John Roxton's which seemed to imply that there was some--
|
|
some resemblance----"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I heard them."
|
|
|
|
"I need not say that any publicity given to such an idea--any levity
|
|
in your narrative of what occurred--would be exceedingly offensive
|
|
to me."
|
|
|
|
"I will keep well within the truth."
|
|
|
|
"Lord John's observations are frequently exceedingly fanciful,
|
|
and he is capable of attributing the most absurd reasons to
|
|
the respect which is always shown by the most undeveloped races
|
|
to dignity and character. You follow my meaning?"
|
|
|
|
"Entirely."
|
|
|
|
"I leave the matter to your discretion." Then, after a long pause,
|
|
he added: "The king of the ape-men was really a creature of great
|
|
distinction--a most remarkably handsome and intelligent personality.
|
|
Did it not strike you?"
|
|
|
|
"A most remarkable creature," said I.
|
|
|
|
And the Professor, much eased in his mind, settled down to his
|
|
slumber once more.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV
|
|
|
|
"Those Were the Real Conquests"
|
|
|
|
We had imagined that our pursuers, the ape-men, knew nothing of our
|
|
brush-wood hiding-place, but we were soon to find out our mistake.
|
|
There was no sound in the woods--not a leaf moved upon the trees,
|
|
and all was peace around us--but we should have been warned by our
|
|
first experience how cunningly and how patiently these creatures
|
|
can watch and wait until their chance comes. Whatever fate may
|
|
be mine through life, I am very sure that I shall never be nearer
|
|
death than I was that morning. But I will tell you the thing in its
|
|
due order.
|
|
|
|
We all awoke exhausted after the terrific emotions and scanty food
|
|
of yesterday. Summerlee was still so weak that it was an effort
|
|
for him to stand; but the old man was full of a sort of surly
|
|
courage which would never admit defeat. A council was held,
|
|
and it was agreed that we should wait quietly for an hour or two
|
|
where we were, have our much-needed breakfast, and then make our
|
|
way across the plateau and round the central lake to the caves
|
|
where my observations had shown that the Indians lived. We relied
|
|
upon the fact that we could count upon the good word of those whom
|
|
we had rescued to ensure a warm welcome from their fellows.
|
|
Then, with our mission accomplished and possessing a fuller
|
|
knowledge of the secrets of Maple White Land, we should turn our
|
|
whole thoughts to the vital problem of our escape and return.
|
|
Even Challenger was ready to admit that we should then have done all
|
|
for which we had come, and that our first duty from that time onwards
|
|
was to carry back to civilization the amazing discoveries we had made.
|
|
|
|
We were able now to take a more leisurely view of the Indians whom
|
|
we had rescued. They were small men, wiry, active, and well-built,
|
|
with lank black hair tied up in a bunch behind their heads with a
|
|
leathern thong, and leathern also were their loin-clothes. Their
|
|
faces were hairless, well formed, and good-humored. The lobes
|
|
of their ears, hanging ragged and bloody, showed that they had been
|
|
pierced for some ornaments which their captors had torn out.
|
|
Their speech, though unintelligible to us, was fluent among themselves,
|
|
and as they pointed to each other and uttered the word "Accala"
|
|
many times over, we gathered that this was the name of the nation.
|
|
Occasionally, with faces which were convulsed with fear and hatred,
|
|
they shook their clenched hands at the woods round and cried:
|
|
"Doda! Doda!" which was surely their term for their enemies.
|
|
|
|
What do you make of them, Challenger?" asked Lord John. "One thing
|
|
is very clear to me, and that is that the little chap with the front
|
|
of his head shaved is a chief among them."
|
|
|
|
It was indeed evident that this man stood apart from the others,
|
|
and that they never ventured to address him without every sign
|
|
of deep respect. He seemed to be the youngest of them all, and yet,
|
|
so proud and high was his spirit that, upon Challenger laying
|
|
his great hand upon his head, he started like a spurred horse and,
|
|
with a quick flash of his dark eyes, moved further away from
|
|
the Professor. Then, placing his hand upon his breast and holding
|
|
himself with great dignity, he uttered the word "Maretas" several times.
|
|
The Professor, unabashed, seized the nearest Indian by the shoulder
|
|
and proceeded to lecture upon him as if he were a potted specimen
|
|
in a class-room.
|
|
|
|
"The type of these people," said he in his sonorous fashion,
|
|
"whether judged by cranial capacity, facial angle, or any other test,
|
|
cannot be regarded as a low one; on the contrary, we must place it
|
|
as considerably higher in the scale than many South American tribes
|
|
which I can mention. On no possible supposition can we explain
|
|
the evolution of such a race in this place. For that matter,
|
|
so great a gap separates these ape-men from the primitive animals
|
|
which have survived upon this plateau, that it is inadmissible
|
|
to think that they could have developed where we find them."
|
|
|
|
"Then where the dooce did they drop from?" asked Lord John.
|
|
|
|
"A question which will, no doubt, be eagerly discussed in every
|
|
scientific society in Europe and America," the Professor answered.
|
|
"My own reading of the situation for what it is worth--"
|
|
he inflated his chest enormously and looked insolently around him
|
|
at the words--"is that evolution has advanced under the peculiar
|
|
conditions of this country up to the vertebrate stage, the old
|
|
types surviving and living on in company with the newer ones.
|
|
Thus we find such modern creatures as the tapir--an animal with quite
|
|
a respectable length of pedigree--the great deer, and the ant-eater
|
|
in the companionship of reptilian forms of jurassic type.
|
|
So much is clear. And now come the ape-men and the Indian.
|
|
What is the scientific mind to think of their presence? I can only
|
|
account for it by an invasion from outside. It is probable that there
|
|
existed an anthropoid ape in South America, who in past ages found
|
|
his way to this place, and that he developed into the creatures
|
|
we have seen, some of which"--here he looked hard at me--"were
|
|
of an appearance and shape which, if it had been accompanied
|
|
by corresponding intelligence, would, I do not hesitate to say,
|
|
have reflected credit upon any living race. As to the Indians I
|
|
cannot doubt that they are more recent immigrants from below.
|
|
Under the stress of famine or of conquest they have made their way
|
|
up here. Faced by ferocious creatures which they had never before seen,
|
|
they took refuge in the caves which our young friend has described,
|
|
but they have no doubt had a bitter fight to hold their own against
|
|
wild beasts, and especially against the ape-men who would regard
|
|
them as intruders, and wage a merciless war upon them with a cunning
|
|
which the larger beasts would lack. Hence the fact that their
|
|
numbers appear to be limited. Well, gentlemen, have I read you
|
|
the riddle aright, or is there any point which you would query?"
|
|
|
|
Professor Summerlee for once was too depressed to argue, though he
|
|
shook his head violently as a token of general disagreement.
|
|
Lord John merely scratched his scanty locks with the remark that he
|
|
couldn't put up a fight as he wasn't in the same weight or class.
|
|
For my own part I performed my usual role of bringing things down
|
|
to a strictly prosaic and practical level by the remark that one of
|
|
the Indians was missing.
|
|
|
|
"He has gone to fetch some water," said Lord Roxton. "We fitted
|
|
him up with an empty beef tin and he is off."
|
|
|
|
"To the old camp?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"No, to the brook. It's among the trees there. It can't be more
|
|
than a couple of hundred yards. But the beggar is certainly taking
|
|
his time."
|
|
|
|
"I'll go and look after him," said I. I picked up my rifle and
|
|
strolled in the direction of the brook, leaving my friends to lay
|
|
out the scanty breakfast. It may seem to you rash that even for so
|
|
short a distance I should quit the shelter of our friendly thicket,
|
|
but you will remember that we were many miles from Ape-town, that
|
|
so far as we knew the creatures had not discovered our retreat,
|
|
and that in any case with a rifle in my hands I had no fear of them.
|
|
I had not yet learned their cunning or their strength.
|
|
|
|
I could hear the murmur of our brook somewhere ahead of me,
|
|
but there was a tangle of trees and brushwood between me and it.
|
|
I was making my way through this at a point which was just out
|
|
of sight of my companions, when, under one of the trees, I noticed
|
|
something red huddled among the bushes. As I approached it, I was
|
|
shocked to see that it was the dead body of the missing Indian.
|
|
He lay upon his side, his limbs drawn up, and his head screwed round
|
|
at a most unnatural angle, so that he seemed to be looking straight
|
|
over his own shoulder. I gave a cry to warn my friends that something
|
|
was amiss, and running forwards I stooped over the body. Surely my
|
|
guardian angel was very near me then, for some instinct of fear, or it
|
|
may have been some faint rustle of leaves, made me glance upwards.
|
|
Out of the thick green foliage which hung low over my head, two long
|
|
muscular arms covered with reddish hair were slowly descending.
|
|
Another instant and the great stealthy hands would have been round
|
|
my throat. I sprang backwards, but quick as I was, those hands were
|
|
quicker still. Through my sudden spring they missed a fatal grip,
|
|
but one of them caught the back of my neck and the other one my face.
|
|
I threw my hands up to protect my throat, and the next moment
|
|
the huge paw had slid down my face and closed over them. I was
|
|
lifted lightly from the ground, and I felt an intolerable pressure
|
|
forcing my head back and back until the strain upon the cervical
|
|
spine was more than I could bear. My senses swam, but I still
|
|
tore at the hand and forced it out from my chin. Looking up I saw
|
|
a frightful face with cold inexorable light blue eyes looking down
|
|
into mine. There was something hypnotic in those terrible eyes.
|
|
I could struggle no longer. As the creature felt me grow limp
|
|
in his grasp, two white canines gleamed for a moment at each side
|
|
of the vile mouth, and the grip tightened still more upon my chin,
|
|
forcing it always upwards and back. A thin, oval-tinted mist
|
|
formed before my eyes and little silvery bells tinkled in my ears.
|
|
Dully and far off I heard the crack of a rifle and was feebly aware
|
|
of the shock as I was dropped to the earth, where I lay without sense
|
|
or motion.
|
|
|
|
I awoke to find myself on my back upon the grass in our lair within
|
|
the thicket. Someone had brought the water from the brook, and Lord
|
|
John was sprinkling my head with it, while Challenger and Summerlee
|
|
were propping me up, with concern in their faces. For a moment I
|
|
had a glimpse of the human spirits behind their scientific masks.
|
|
It was really shock, rather than any injury, which had prostrated me,
|
|
and in half-an-hour, in spite of aching head and stiff neck, I was
|
|
sitting up and ready for anything.
|
|
|
|
"But you've had the escape of your life, young fellah my lad,"
|
|
said Lord Roxton. "When I heard your cry and ran forward, and saw
|
|
your head twisted half-off and your stohwassers kickin' in the air,
|
|
I thought we were one short. I missed the beast in my flurry,
|
|
but he dropped you all right and was off like a streak. By George!
|
|
I wish I had fifty men with rifles. I'd clear out the whole
|
|
infernal gang of them and leave this country a bit cleaner than we
|
|
found it."
|
|
|
|
It was clear now that the ape-men had in some way marked us down,
|
|
and that we were watched on every side. We had not so much to fear
|
|
from them during the day, but they would be very likely to rush us
|
|
by night; so the sooner we got away from their neighborhood the better.
|
|
On three sides of us was absolute forest, and there we might find
|
|
ourselves in an ambush. But on the fourth side--that which sloped
|
|
down in the direction of the lake--there was only low scrub,
|
|
with scattered trees and occasional open glades. It was, in fact,
|
|
the route which I had myself taken in my solitary journey, and it led
|
|
us straight for the Indian caves. This then must for every reason
|
|
be our road.
|
|
|
|
One great regret we had, and that was to leave our old camp behind us,
|
|
not only for the sake of the stores which remained there, but even
|
|
more because we were losing touch with Zambo, our link with the
|
|
outside world. However, we had a fair supply of cartridges and all
|
|
our guns, so, for a time at least, we could look after ourselves,
|
|
and we hoped soon to have a chance of returning and restoring our
|
|
communications with our negro. He had faithfully promised to stay
|
|
where he was, and we had not a doubt that he would be as good as his word.
|
|
|
|
It was in the early afternoon that we started upon our journey.
|
|
The young chief walked at our head as our guide, but refused
|
|
indignantly to carry any burden. Behind him came the two
|
|
surviving Indians with our scanty possessions upon their backs.
|
|
We four white men walked in the rear with rifles loaded and ready.
|
|
As we started there broke from the thick silent woods behind us
|
|
a sudden great ululation of the ape-men, which may have been a cheer
|
|
of triumph at our departure or a jeer of contempt at our flight.
|
|
Looking back we saw only the dense screen of trees, but that
|
|
long-drawn yell told us how many of our enemies lurked among them.
|
|
We saw no sign of pursuit, however, and soon we had got into more open
|
|
country and beyond their power.
|
|
|
|
As I tramped along, the rearmost of the four, I could not help
|
|
smiling at the appearance of my three companions in front.
|
|
Was this the luxurious Lord John Roxton who had sat that evening
|
|
in the Albany amidst his Persian rugs and his pictures in the pink
|
|
radiance of the tinted lights? And was this the imposing Professor
|
|
who had swelled behind the great desk in his massive study at
|
|
Enmore Park? And, finally, could this be the austere and prim figure
|
|
which had risen before the meeting at the Zoological Institute?
|
|
No three tramps that one could have met in a Surrey lane could
|
|
have looked more hopeless and bedraggled. We had, it is true,
|
|
been only a week or so upon the top of the plateau, but all our
|
|
spare clothing was in our camp below, and the one week had been
|
|
a severe one upon us all, though least to me who had not to endure
|
|
the handling of the ape-men. My three friends had all lost
|
|
their hats, and had now bound handkerchiefs round their heads,
|
|
their clothes hung in ribbons about them, and their unshaven grimy
|
|
faces were hardly to be recognized. Both Summerlee and Challenger
|
|
were limping heavily, while I still dragged my feet from weakness
|
|
after the shock of the morning, and my neck was as stiff as a board
|
|
from the murderous grip that held it. We were indeed a sorry crew,
|
|
and I did not wonder to see our Indian companions glance back
|
|
at us occasionally with horror and amazement on their faces.
|
|
|
|
In the late afternoon we reached the margin of the lake, and as we
|
|
emerged from the bush and saw the sheet of water stretching before us
|
|
our native friends set up a shrill cry of joy and pointed eagerly
|
|
in front of them. It was indeed a wonderful sight which lay
|
|
before us. Sweeping over the glassy surface was a great flotilla
|
|
of canoes coming straight for the shore upon which we stood.
|
|
They were some miles out when we first saw them, but they shot
|
|
forward with great swiftness, and were soon so near that the rowers
|
|
could distinguish our persons. Instantly a thunderous shout
|
|
of delight burst from them, and we saw them rise from their seats,
|
|
waving their paddles and spears madly in the air. Then bending
|
|
to their work once more, they flew across the intervening water,
|
|
beached their boats upon the sloping sand, and rushed up to us,
|
|
prostrating themselves with loud cries of greeting before the young chief.
|
|
Finally one of them, an elderly man, with a necklace and bracelet
|
|
of great lustrous glass beads and the skin of some beautiful mottled
|
|
amber-colored animal slung over his shoulders, ran forward and
|
|
embraced most tenderly the youth whom we had saved. He then looked
|
|
at us and asked some questions, after which he stepped up with much
|
|
dignity and embraced us also each in turn. Then, at his order,
|
|
the whole tribe lay down upon the ground before us in homage.
|
|
Personally I felt shy and uncomfortable at this obsequious adoration,
|
|
and I read the same feeling in the faces of Roxton and Summerlee,
|
|
but Challenger expanded like a flower in the sun.
|
|
|
|
"They may be undeveloped types," said he, stroking his beard and
|
|
looking round at them, "but their deportment in the presence of their
|
|
superiors might be a lesson to some of our more advanced Europeans.
|
|
Strange how correct are the instincts of the natural man!"
|
|
|
|
It was clear that the natives had come out upon the war-path, for
|
|
every man carried his spear--a long bamboo tipped with bone--his bow
|
|
and arrows, and some sort of club or stone battle-axe slung at his side.
|
|
Their dark, angry glances at the woods from which we had come,
|
|
and the frequent repetition of the word "Doda," made it clear enough
|
|
that this was a rescue party who had set forth to save or revenge
|
|
the old chief's son, for such we gathered that the youth must be.
|
|
A council was now held by the whole tribe squatting in a circle,
|
|
whilst we sat near on a slab of basalt and watched their proceedings.
|
|
Two or three warriors spoke, and finally our young friend made
|
|
a spirited harangue with such eloquent features and gestures that we
|
|
could understand it all as clearly as if we had known his language.
|
|
|
|
"What is the use of returning?" he said. "Sooner or later
|
|
the thing must be done. Your comrades have been murdered.
|
|
What if I have returned safe? These others have been done to death.
|
|
There is no safety for any of us. We are assembled now and ready."
|
|
Then he pointed to us. "These strange men are our friends.
|
|
They are great fighters, and they hate the ape-men even as we do.
|
|
They command," here he pointed up to heaven, "the thunder and
|
|
the lightning. When shall we have such a chance again? Let us
|
|
go forward, and either die now or live for the future in safety.
|
|
How else shall we go back unashamed to our women?"
|
|
|
|
The little red warriors hung upon the words of the speaker, and when
|
|
he had finished they burst into a roar of applause, waving their
|
|
rude weapons in the air. The old chief stepped forward to us,
|
|
and asked us some questions, pointing at the same time to the woods.
|
|
Lord John made a sign to him that he should wait for an answer
|
|
and then he turned to us.
|
|
|
|
"Well, it's up to you to say what you will do," said he; "for my part
|
|
I have a score to settle with these monkey-folk, and if it ends
|
|
by wiping them off the face of the earth I don't see that the earth
|
|
need fret about it. I'm goin' with our little red pals and I mean
|
|
to see them through the scrap. What do you say, young fellah?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course I will come."
|
|
|
|
"And you, Challenger?"
|
|
|
|
"I will assuredly co-operate."
|
|
|
|
"And you, Summerlee?"
|
|
|
|
"We seem to be drifting very far from the object of this expedition,
|
|
Lord John. I assure you that I little thought when I left my
|
|
professional chair in London that it was for the purpose of heading
|
|
a raid of savages upon a colony of anthropoid apes."
|
|
|
|
"To such base uses do we come," said Lord John, smiling. "But we
|
|
are up against it, so what's the decision?"
|
|
|
|
"It seems a most questionable step," said Summerlee, argumentative to
|
|
the last, "but if you are all going, I hardly see how I can remain behind."
|
|
|
|
"Then it is settled," said Lord John, and turning to the chief he
|
|
nodded and slapped his rifle.
|
|
|
|
The old fellow clasped our hands, each in turn, while his men
|
|
cheered louder than ever. It was too late to advance that night,
|
|
so the Indians settled down into a rude bivouac. On all sides their
|
|
fires began to glimmer and smoke. Some of them who had disappeared
|
|
into the jungle came back presently driving a young iguanodon
|
|
before them. Like the others, it had a daub of asphalt upon
|
|
its shoulder, and it was only when we saw one of the natives step
|
|
forward with the air of an owner and give his consent to the beast's
|
|
slaughter that we understood at last that these great creatures
|
|
were as much private property as a herd of cattle, and that these
|
|
symbols which had so perplexed us were nothing more than the marks
|
|
of the owner. Helpless, torpid, and vegetarian, with great limbs
|
|
but a minute brain, they could be rounded up and driven by a child.
|
|
In a few minutes the huge beast had been cut up and slabs of him
|
|
were hanging over a dozen camp fires, together with great scaly
|
|
ganoid fish which had been speared in the lake.
|
|
|
|
Summerlee had lain down and slept upon the sand, but we others
|
|
roamed round the edge of the water, seeking to learn something
|
|
more of this strange country. Twice we found pits of blue clay,
|
|
such as we had already seen in the swamp of the pterodactyls.
|
|
These were old volcanic vents, and for some reason excited the greatest
|
|
interest in Lord John. What attracted Challenger, on the other hand,
|
|
was a bubbling, gurgling mud geyser, where some strange gas formed
|
|
great bursting bubbles upon the surface. He thrust a hollow reed
|
|
into it and cried out with delight like a schoolboy then he was able,
|
|
on touching it with a lighted match, to cause a sharp explosion
|
|
and a blue flame at the far end of the tube. Still more pleased
|
|
was he when, inverting a leathern pouch over the end of the reed,
|
|
and so filling it with the gas, he was able to send it soaring up
|
|
into the air.
|
|
|
|
"An inflammable gas, and one markedly lighter than the atmosphere.
|
|
I should say beyond doubt that it contained a considerable proportion
|
|
of free hydrogen. The resources of G. E. C. are not yet exhausted,
|
|
my young friend. I may yet show you how a great mind molds all Nature
|
|
to its use." He swelled with some secret purpose, but would say
|
|
no more.
|
|
|
|
There was nothing which we could see upon the shore which seemed
|
|
to me so wonderful as the great sheet of water before us.
|
|
Our numbers and our noise had frightened all living creatures away,
|
|
and save for a few pterodactyls, which soared round high above
|
|
our heads while they waited for the carrion, all was still around
|
|
the camp. But it was different out upon the rose-tinted waters
|
|
of the central lake. It boiled and heaved with strange life.
|
|
Great slate-colored backs and high serrated dorsal fins shot up
|
|
with a fringe of silver, and then rolled down into the depths again.
|
|
The sand-banks far out were spotted with uncouth crawling forms,
|
|
huge turtles, strange saurians, and one great flat creature like
|
|
a writhing, palpitating mat of black greasy leather, which flopped
|
|
its way slowly to the lake. Here and there high serpent heads
|
|
projected out of the water, cutting swiftly through it with a
|
|
little collar of foam in front, and a long swirling wake behind,
|
|
rising and falling in graceful, swan-like undulations as they went.
|
|
It was not until one of these creatures wriggled on to a sand-bank
|
|
within a few hundred yards of us, and exposed a barrel-shaped body
|
|
and huge flippers behind the long serpent neck, that Challenger,
|
|
and Summerlee, who had joined us, broke out into their duet of wonder
|
|
and admiration.
|
|
|
|
"Plesiosaurus! A fresh-water plesiosaurus!" cried Summerlee.
|
|
"That I should have lived to see such a sight! We are blessed,
|
|
my dear Challenger, above all zoologists since the world began!"
|
|
|
|
It was not until the night had fallen, and the fires of our savage
|
|
allies glowed red in the shadows, that our two men of science could
|
|
be dragged away from the fascinations of that primeval lake.
|
|
Even in the darkness as we lay upon the strand, we heard from time
|
|
to time the snort and plunge of the huge creatures who lived therein.
|
|
|
|
At earliest dawn our camp was astir and an hour later we had started
|
|
upon our memorable expedition. Often in my dreams have I thought
|
|
that I might live to be a war correspondent. In what wildest one
|
|
could I have conceived the nature of the campaign which it should be
|
|
my lot to report! Here then is my first despatch from a field of battle:
|
|
|
|
Our numbers had been reinforced during the night by a fresh batch
|
|
of natives from the caves, and we may have been four or five hundred
|
|
strong when we made our advance. A fringe of scouts was thrown
|
|
out in front, and behind them the whole force in a solid column made
|
|
their way up the long slope of the bush country until we were near
|
|
the edge of the forest. Here they spread out into a long straggling
|
|
line of spearmen and bowmen. Roxton and Summerlee took their position
|
|
upon the right flank, while Challenger and I were on the left.
|
|
It was a host of the stone age that we were accompanying to battle--
|
|
we with the last word of the gunsmith's art from St. James'
|
|
Street and the Strand.
|
|
|
|
We had not long to wait for our enemy. A wild shrill clamor rose
|
|
from the edge of the wood and suddenly a body of ape-men rushed out
|
|
with clubs and stones, and made for the center of the Indian line.
|
|
It was a valiant move but a foolish one, for the great bandy-legged
|
|
creatures were slow of foot, while their opponents were as active
|
|
as cats. It was horrible to see the fierce brutes with foaming mouths
|
|
and glaring eyes, rushing and grasping, but forever missing their
|
|
elusive enemies, while arrow after arrow buried itself in their hides.
|
|
One great fellow ran past me roaring with pain, with a dozen darts
|
|
sticking from his chest and ribs. In mercy I put a bullet through
|
|
his skull, and he fell sprawling among the aloes. But this was the
|
|
only shot fired, for the attack had been on the center of the line,
|
|
and the Indians there had needed no help of ours in repulsing it.
|
|
Of all the ape-men who had rushed out into the open, I do not think
|
|
that one got back to cover.
|
|
|
|
But the matter was more deadly when we came among the trees.
|
|
For an hour or more after we entered the wood, there was a desperate
|
|
struggle in which for a time we hardly held our own. Springing out from
|
|
among the scrub the ape-men with huge clubs broke in upon the Indians
|
|
and often felled three or four of them before they could be speared.
|
|
Their frightful blows shattered everything upon which they fell.
|
|
One of them knocked Summerlee's rifle to matchwood and the next
|
|
would have crushed his skull had an Indian not stabbed the beast
|
|
to the heart. Other ape-men in the trees above us hurled down stones
|
|
and logs of wood, occasionally dropping bodily on to our ranks
|
|
and fighting furiously until they were felled. Once our allies
|
|
broke under the pressure, and had it not been for the execution
|
|
done by our rifles they would certainly have taken to their heels.
|
|
But they were gallantly rallied by their old chief and came on
|
|
with such a rush that the ape-men began in turn to give way.
|
|
Summerlee was weaponless, but I was emptying my magazine as quick
|
|
as I could fire, and on the further flank we heard the continuous
|
|
cracking of our companion's rifles.
|
|
|
|
Then in a moment came the panic and the collapse. Screaming and howling,
|
|
the great creatures rushed away in all directions through the brushwood,
|
|
while our allies yelled in their savage delight, following swiftly
|
|
after their flying enemies. All the feuds of countless generations,
|
|
all the hatreds and cruelties of their narrow history, all the
|
|
memories of ill-usage and persecution were to be purged that day.
|
|
At last man was to be supreme and the man-beast to find forever
|
|
his allotted place. Fly as they would the fugitives were too slow
|
|
to escape from the active savages, and from every side in the tangled
|
|
woods we heard the exultant yells, the twanging of bows, and the crash
|
|
and thud as ape-men were brought down from their hiding-places in the trees.
|
|
|
|
I was following the others, when I found that Lord John and Challenger
|
|
had come across to join us.
|
|
|
|
"It's over," said Lord John. "I think we can leave the tidying up
|
|
to them. Perhaps the less we see of it the better we shall sleep."
|
|
|
|
Challenger's eyes were shining with the lust of slaughter.
|
|
|
|
"We have been privileged," he cried, strutting about like a gamecock,
|
|
"to be present at one of the typical decisive battles of history--
|
|
the battles which have determined the fate of the world. What, my friends,
|
|
is the conquest of one nation by another? It is meaningless.
|
|
Each produces the same result. But those fierce fights, when in the dawn
|
|
of the ages the cave-dwellers held their own against the tiger folk,
|
|
or the elephants first found that they had a master, those were
|
|
the real conquests--the victories that count. By this strange turn
|
|
of fate we have seen and helped to decide even such a contest.
|
|
Now upon this plateau the future must ever be for man."
|
|
|
|
It needed a robust faith in the end to justify such tragic means.
|
|
As we advanced together through the woods we found the ape-men
|
|
lying thick, transfixed with spears or arrows. Here and there a
|
|
little group of shattered Indians marked where one of the anthropoids
|
|
had turned to bay, and sold his life dearly. Always in front
|
|
of us we heard the yelling and roaring which showed the direction
|
|
of the pursuit. The ape-men had been driven back to their city,
|
|
they had made a last stand there, once again they had been broken,
|
|
and now we were in time to see the final fearful scene of all.
|
|
Some eighty or a hundred males, the last survivors, had been driven
|
|
across that same little clearing which led to the edge of the cliff,
|
|
the scene of our own exploit two days before. As we arrived
|
|
the Indians, a semicircle of spearmen, had closed in on them,
|
|
and in a minute it was over, Thirty or forty died where they stood.
|
|
The others, screaming and clawing, were thrust over the precipice,
|
|
and went hurtling down, as their prisoners had of old, on to the sharp
|
|
bamboos six hundred feet below. It was as Challenger had said,
|
|
and the reign of man was assured forever in Maple White Land.
|
|
The males were exterminated, Ape Town was destroyed, the females and young
|
|
were driven away to live in bondage, and the long rivalry of untold
|
|
centuries had reached its bloody end.
|
|
|
|
For us the victory brought much advantage. Once again we were able
|
|
to visit our camp and get at our stores. Once more also we were able
|
|
to communicate with Zambo, who had been terrified by the spectacle
|
|
from afar of an avalanche of apes falling from the edge of the cliff.
|
|
|
|
"Come away, Massas, come away!" he cried, his eyes starting from
|
|
his head. "The debbil get you sure if you stay up there."
|
|
|
|
"It is the voice of sanity!" said Summerlee with conviction.
|
|
"We have had adventures enough and they are neither suitable to our
|
|
character or our position. I hold you to your word, Challenger.
|
|
From now onwards you devote your energies to getting us out of this
|
|
horrible country and back once more to civilization."
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV
|
|
|
|
"Our Eyes have seen Great Wonders"
|
|
|
|
I write this from day to day, but I trust that before I come to
|
|
the end of it, I may be able to say that the light shines, at last,
|
|
through our clouds. We are held here with no clear means of making
|
|
our escape, and bitterly we chafe against it. Yet, I can well
|
|
imagine that the day may come when we may be glad that we were kept,
|
|
against our will, to see something more of the wonders of this
|
|
singular place, and of the creatures who inhabit it.
|
|
|
|
The victory of the Indians and the annihilation of the ape-men,
|
|
marked the turning point of our fortunes. From then onwards,
|
|
we were in truth masters of the plateau, for the natives looked
|
|
upon us with a mixture of fear and gratitude, since by our strange
|
|
powers we had aided them to destroy their hereditary foe.
|
|
For their own sakes they would, perhaps, be glad to see the departure
|
|
of such formidable and incalculable people, but they have not
|
|
themselves suggested any way by which we may reach the plains below.
|
|
There had been, so far as we could follow their signs, a tunnel
|
|
by which the place could be approached, the lower exit of which we
|
|
had seen from below. By this, no doubt, both ape-men and Indians
|
|
had at different epochs reached the top, and Maple White with his
|
|
companion had taken the same way. Only the year before, however,
|
|
there had been a terrific earthquake, and the upper end of the tunnel
|
|
had fallen in and completely disappeared. The Indians now could
|
|
only shake their heads and shrug their shoulders when we expressed
|
|
by signs our desire to descend. It may be that they cannot,
|
|
but it may also be that they will not, help us to get away.
|
|
|
|
At the end of the victorious campaign the surviving ape-folk
|
|
were driven across the plateau (their wailings were horrible)
|
|
and established in the neighborhood of the Indian caves, where they would,
|
|
from now onwards, be a servile race under the eyes of their masters.
|
|
It was a rude, raw, primeval version of the Jews in Babylon
|
|
or the Israelites in Egypt. At night we could hear from amid
|
|
the trees the long-drawn cry, as some primitive Ezekiel mourned
|
|
for fallen greatness and recalled the departed glories of Ape Town.
|
|
Hewers of wood and drawers of water, such were they from now onwards.
|
|
|
|
We had returned across the plateau with our allies two days
|
|
after the battle, and made our camp at the foot of their cliffs.
|
|
They would have had us share their caves with them, but Lord John
|
|
would by no means consent to it considering that to do so would
|
|
put us in their power if they were treacherously disposed.
|
|
We kept our independence, therefore, and had our weapons ready
|
|
for any emergency, while preserving the most friendly relations.
|
|
We also continually visited their caves, which were most remarkable places,
|
|
though whether made by man or by Nature we have never been able
|
|
to determine. They were all on the one stratum, hollowed out of some
|
|
soft rock which lay between the volcanic basalt forming the ruddy
|
|
cliffs above them, and the hard granite which formed their base.
|
|
|
|
The openings were about eighty feet above the ground, and were led
|
|
up to by long stone stairs, so narrow and steep that no large animal
|
|
could mount them. Inside they were warm and dry, running in straight
|
|
passages of varying length into the side of the hill, with smooth
|
|
gray walls decorated with many excellent pictures done with charred
|
|
sticks and representing the various animals of the plateau.
|
|
If every living thing were swept from the country the future
|
|
explorer would find upon the walls of these caves ample evidence
|
|
of the strange fauna--the dinosaurs, iguanodons, and fish lizards--
|
|
which had lived so recently upon earth.
|
|
|
|
Since we had learned that the huge iguanodons were kept as tame
|
|
herds by their owners, and were simply walking meat-stores,
|
|
we had conceived that man, even with his primitive weapons,
|
|
had established his ascendancy upon the plateau. We were soon
|
|
to discover that it was not so, and that he was still there upon tolerance.
|
|
|
|
It was on the third day after our forming our camp near the Indian
|
|
caves that the tragedy occurred. Challenger and Summerlee had gone off
|
|
together that day to the lake where some of the natives, under their
|
|
direction, were engaged in harpooning specimens of the great lizards.
|
|
Lord John and I had remained in our camp, while a number of the Indians
|
|
were scattered about upon the grassy slope in front of the caves
|
|
engaged in different ways. Suddenly there was a shrill cry of alarm,
|
|
with the word "Stoa" resounding from a hundred tongues. From every
|
|
side men, women, and children were rushing wildly for shelter,
|
|
swarming up the staircases and into the caves in a mad stampede.
|
|
|
|
Looking up, we could see them waving their arms from the rocks
|
|
above and beckoning to us to join them in their refuge. We had
|
|
both seized our magazine rifles and ran out to see what the danger
|
|
could be. Suddenly from the near belt of trees there broke forth
|
|
a group of twelve or fifteen Indians, running for their lives,
|
|
and at their very heels two of those frightful monsters which had
|
|
disturbed our camp and pursued me upon my solitary journey.
|
|
In shape they were like horrible toads, and moved in a succession
|
|
of springs, but in size they were of an incredible bulk, larger than
|
|
the largest elephant. We had never before seen them save at night,
|
|
and indeed they are nocturnal animals save when disturbed in their lairs,
|
|
as these had been. We now stood amazed at the sight, for their
|
|
blotched and warty skins were of a curious fish-like iridescence,
|
|
and the sunlight struck them with an ever-varying rainbow bloom
|
|
as they moved.
|
|
|
|
We had little time to watch them, however, for in an instant they
|
|
had overtaken the fugitives and were making a dire slaughter
|
|
among them. Their method was to fall forward with their full
|
|
weight upon each in turn, leaving him crushed and mangled, to bound
|
|
on after the others. The wretched Indians screamed with terror,
|
|
but were helpless, run as they would, before the relentless
|
|
purpose and horrible activity of these monstrous creatures.
|
|
One after another they went down, and there were not half-a-dozen
|
|
surviving by the time my companion and I could come to their help.
|
|
But our aid was of little avail and only involved us in the same peril.
|
|
At the range of a couple of hundred yards we emptied our magazines,
|
|
firing bullet after bullet into the beasts, but with no more effect
|
|
than if we were pelting them with pellets of paper. Their slow
|
|
reptilian natures cared nothing for wounds, and the springs of
|
|
their lives, with no special brain center but scattered throughout
|
|
their spinal cords, could not be tapped by any modern weapons.
|
|
The most that we could do was to check their progress by distracting
|
|
their attention with the flash and roar of our guns, and so to give both
|
|
the natives and ourselves time to reach the steps which led to safety.
|
|
But where the conical explosive bullets of the twentieth century
|
|
were of no avail, the poisoned arrows of the natives, dipped in
|
|
the juice of strophanthus and steeped afterwards in decayed carrion,
|
|
could succeed. Such arrows were of little avail to the hunter who
|
|
attacked the beast, because their action in that torpid circulation
|
|
was slow, and before its powers failed it could certainly overtake
|
|
and slay its assailant. But now, as the two monsters hounded us
|
|
to the very foot of the stairs, a drift of darts came whistling
|
|
from every chink in the cliff above them. In a minute they were
|
|
feathered with them, and yet with no sign of pain they clawed
|
|
and slobbered with impotent rage at the steps which would lead them
|
|
to their victims, mounting clumsily up for a few yards and then
|
|
sliding down again to the ground. But at last the poison worked.
|
|
One of them gave a deep rumbling groan and dropped his huge squat
|
|
head on to the earth. The other bounded round in an eccentric
|
|
circle with shrill, wailing cries, and then lying down writhed
|
|
in agony for some minutes before it also stiffened and lay still.
|
|
With yells of triumph the Indians came flocking down from their
|
|
caves and danced a frenzied dance of victory round the dead bodies,
|
|
in mad joy that two more of the most dangerous of all their enemies
|
|
had been slain. That night they cut up and removed the bodies,
|
|
not to eat--for the poison was still active--but lest they should
|
|
breed a pestilence. The great reptilian hearts, however, each as
|
|
large as a cushion, still lay there, beating slowly and steadily,
|
|
with a gentle rise and fall, in horrible independent life. It was
|
|
only upon the third day that the ganglia ran down and the dreadful
|
|
things were still.
|
|
|
|
Some day, when I have a better desk than a meat-tin and more helpful
|
|
tools than a worn stub of pencil and a last, tattered note-book, I
|
|
will write some fuller account of the Accala Indians--of our life
|
|
amongst them, and of the glimpses which we had of the strange
|
|
conditions of wondrous Maple White Land. Memory, at least,
|
|
will never fail me, for so long as the breath of life is in me,
|
|
every hour and every action of that period will stand out as hard
|
|
and clear as do the first strange happenings of our childhood.
|
|
No new impressions could efface those which are so deeply cut.
|
|
When the time comes I will describe that wondrous moonlit night
|
|
upon the great lake when a young ichthyosaurus--a strange creature,
|
|
half seal, half fish, to look at, with bone-covered eyes on each
|
|
side of his snout, and a third eye fixed upon the top of his head--
|
|
was entangled in an Indian net, and nearly upset our canoe before
|
|
we towed it ashore; the same night that a green water-snake shot
|
|
out from the rushes and carried off in its coils the steersman
|
|
of Challenger's canoe. I will tell, too, of the great nocturnal
|
|
white thing--to this day we do not know whether it was beast
|
|
or reptile--which lived in a vile swamp to the east of the lake,
|
|
and flitted about with a faint phosphorescent glimmer in the darkness.
|
|
The Indians were so terrified at it that they would not go near
|
|
the place, and, though we twice made expeditions and saw it each time,
|
|
we could not make our way through the deep marsh in which it lived.
|
|
I can only say that it seemed to be larger than a cow and had
|
|
the strangest musky odor. I will tell also of the huge bird
|
|
which chased Challenger to the shelter of the rocks one day--
|
|
a great running bird, far taller than an ostrich, with a vulture-like
|
|
neck and cruel head which made it a walking death. As Challenger
|
|
climbed to safety one dart of that savage curving beak shore
|
|
off the heel of his boot as if it had been cut with a chisel.
|
|
This time at least modern weapons prevailed and the great creature,
|
|
twelve feet from head to foot--phororachus its name, according to
|
|
our panting but exultant Professor--went down before Lord
|
|
Roxton's rifle in a flurry of waving feathers and kicking limbs,
|
|
with two remorseless yellow eyes glaring up from the midst of it.
|
|
May I live to see that flattened vicious skull in its own niche
|
|
amid the trophies of the Albany. Finally, I will assuredly give
|
|
some account of the toxodon, the giant ten-foot guinea pig,
|
|
with projecting chisel teeth, which we killed as it drank in the gray
|
|
of the morning by the side of the lake.
|
|
|
|
All this I shall some day write at fuller length, and amidst
|
|
these more stirring days I would tenderly sketch in these lovely
|
|
summer evenings, when with the deep blue sky above us we lay in
|
|
good comradeship among the long grasses by the wood and marveled
|
|
at the strange fowl that swept over us and the quaint new creatures
|
|
which crept from their burrows to watch us, while above us
|
|
the boughs of the bushes were heavy with luscious fruit, and below
|
|
us strange and lovely flowers peeped at us from among the herbage;
|
|
or those long moonlit nights when we lay out upon the shimmering
|
|
surface of the great lake and watched with wonder and awe the huge
|
|
circles rippling out from the sudden splash of some fantastic monster;
|
|
or the greenish gleam, far down in the deep water, of some strange
|
|
creature upon the confines of darkness. These are the scenes which
|
|
my mind and my pen will dwell upon in every detail at some future day.
|
|
|
|
But, you will ask, why these experiences and why this delay, when you
|
|
and your comrades should have been occupied day and night in the
|
|
devising of some means by which you could return to the outer world?
|
|
My answer is, that there was not one of us who was not working
|
|
for this end, but that our work had been in vain. One fact we had
|
|
very speedily discovered: The Indians would do nothing to help us.
|
|
In every other way they were our friends--one might almost say
|
|
our devoted slaves--but when it was suggested that they should
|
|
help us to make and carry a plank which would bridge the chasm,
|
|
or when we wished to get from them thongs of leather or liana
|
|
to weave ropes which might help us, we were met by a good-humored,
|
|
but an invincible, refusal. They would smile, twinkle their eyes,
|
|
shake their heads, and there was the end of it. Even the old chief
|
|
met us with the same obstinate denial, and it was only Maretas,
|
|
the youngster whom we had saved, who looked wistfully at us and told
|
|
us by his gestures that he was grieved for our thwarted wishes.
|
|
Ever since their crowning triumph with the ape-men they looked upon
|
|
us as supermen, who bore victory in the tubes of strange weapons,
|
|
and they believed that so long as we remained with them good fortune
|
|
would be theirs. A little red-skinned wife and a cave of our own were
|
|
freely offered to each of us if we would but forget our own people
|
|
and dwell forever upon the plateau. So far all had been kindly,
|
|
however far apart our desires might be; but we felt well assured
|
|
that our actual plans of a descent must be kept secret, for we
|
|
had reason to fear that at the last they might try to hold us
|
|
by force.
|
|
|
|
In spite of the danger from dinosaurs (which is not great save
|
|
at night, for, as I may have said before, they are mostly nocturnal
|
|
in their habits) I have twice in the last three weeks been over to
|
|
our old camp in order to see our negro who still kept watch and ward
|
|
below the cliff. My eyes strained eagerly across the great plain
|
|
in the hope of seeing afar off the help for which we had prayed.
|
|
But the long cactus-strewn levels still stretched away, empty and bare,
|
|
to the distant line of the cane-brake.
|
|
|
|
"They will soon come now, Massa Malone. Before another week
|
|
pass Indian come back and bring rope and fetch you down."
|
|
Such was the cheery cry of our excellent Zambo.
|
|
|
|
I had one strange experience as I came from this second visit
|
|
which had involved my being away for a night from my companions.
|
|
I was returning along the well-remembered route, and had reached
|
|
a spot within a mile or so of the marsh of the pterodactyls,
|
|
when I saw an extraordinary object approaching me. It was a man
|
|
who walked inside a framework made of bent canes so that he was
|
|
enclosed on all sides in a bell-shaped cage. As I drew nearer
|
|
I was more amazed still to see that it was Lord John Roxton.
|
|
When he saw me he slipped from under his curious protection and came
|
|
towards me laughing, and yet, as I thought, with some confusion in
|
|
his manner.
|
|
|
|
"Well, young fellah," said he, "who would have thought of meetin'
|
|
you up here?"
|
|
|
|
"What in the world are you doing?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Visitin' my friends, the pterodactyls," said he.
|
|
|
|
"But why?"
|
|
|
|
"Interestin' beasts, don't you think? But unsociable! Nasty rude
|
|
ways with strangers, as you may remember. So I rigged this framework
|
|
which keeps them from bein' too pressin' in their attentions."
|
|
|
|
"But what do you want in the swamp?"
|
|
|
|
He looked at me with a very questioning eye, and I read hesitation
|
|
in his face.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you think other people besides Professors can want to
|
|
know things?" he said at last. "I'm studyin' the pretty dears.
|
|
That's enough for you."
|
|
|
|
"No offense," said I.
|
|
|
|
His good-humor returned and he laughed.
|
|
|
|
"No offense, young fellah. I'm goin' to get a young devil chick
|
|
for Challenger. That's one of my jobs. No, I don't want your company.
|
|
I'm safe in this cage, and you are not. So long, and I'll be back
|
|
in camp by night-fall."
|
|
|
|
He turned away and I left him wandering on through the wood
|
|
with his extraordinary cage around him.
|
|
|
|
If Lord John's behavior at this time was strange, that of Challenger
|
|
was more so. I may say that he seemed to possess an extraordinary
|
|
fascination for the Indian women, and that he always carried a large
|
|
spreading palm branch with which he beat them off as if they were flies,
|
|
when their attentions became too pressing. To see him walking
|
|
like a comic opera Sultan, with this badge of authority in his hand,
|
|
his black beard bristling in front of him, his toes pointing
|
|
at each step, and a train of wide-eyed Indian girls behind him,
|
|
clad in their slender drapery of bark cloth, is one of the most
|
|
grotesque of all the pictures which I will carry back with me.
|
|
As to Summerlee, he was absorbed in the insect and bird life
|
|
of the plateau, and spent his whole time (save that considerable
|
|
portion which was devoted to abusing Challenger for not getting
|
|
us out of our difficulties) in cleaning and mounting his specimens.
|
|
|
|
Challenger had been in the habit of walking off by himself every morning
|
|
and returning from time to time with looks of portentous solemnity,
|
|
as one who bears the full weight of a great enterprise upon his shoulders.
|
|
One day, palm branch in hand, and his crowd of adoring devotees behind him, he
|
|
led us down to his hidden work-shop and took us into the secret of his plans.
|
|
|
|
The place was a small clearing in the center of a palm grove. In this
|
|
was one of those boiling mud geysers which I have already described.
|
|
Around its edge were scattered a number of leathern thongs cut
|
|
from iguanodon hide, and a large collapsed membrane which proved
|
|
to be the dried and scraped stomach of one of the great fish lizards
|
|
from the lake. This huge sack had been sewn up at one end and only
|
|
a small orifice left at the other. Into this opening several
|
|
bamboo canes had been inserted and the other ends of these canes
|
|
were in contact with conical clay funnels which collected the gas
|
|
bubbling up through the mud of the geyser. Soon the flaccid organ
|
|
began to slowly expand and show such a tendency to upward movements
|
|
that Challenger fastened the cords which held it to the trunks
|
|
of the surrounding trees. In half an hour a good-sized gas-bag
|
|
had been formed, and the jerking and straining upon the thongs
|
|
showed that it was capable of considerable lift. Challenger, like a
|
|
glad father in the presence of his first-born, stood smiling and
|
|
stroking his beard, in silent, self-satisfied content as he gazed
|
|
at the creation of his brain. It was Summerlee who first broke the silence.
|
|
|
|
"You don't mean us to go up in that thing, Challenger?" said he,
|
|
in an acid voice.
|
|
|
|
"I mean, my dear Summerlee, to give you such a demonstration of its
|
|
powers that after seeing it you will, I am sure, have no hesitation
|
|
in trusting yourself to it."
|
|
|
|
"You can put it right out of your head now, at once," said Summerlee
|
|
with decision, "nothing on earth would induce me to commit such a folly.
|
|
Lord John, I trust that you will not countenance such madness?"
|
|
|
|
"Dooced ingenious, I call it," said our peer. "I'd like to see
|
|
how it works."
|
|
|
|
"So you shall," said Challenger. "For some days I have exerted
|
|
my whole brain force upon the problem of how we shall descend from
|
|
these cliffs. We have satisfied ourselves that we cannot climb down
|
|
and that there is no tunnel. We are also unable to construct any kind
|
|
of bridge which may take us back to the pinnacle from which we came.
|
|
How then shall I find a means to convey us? Some little time ago I
|
|
had remarked to our young friend here that free hydrogen was evolved
|
|
from the geyser. The idea of a balloon naturally followed. I was,
|
|
I will admit, somewhat baffled by the difficulty of discovering
|
|
an envelope to contain the gas, but the contemplation of the immense
|
|
entrails of these reptiles supplied me with a solution to the problem.
|
|
Behold the result!"
|
|
|
|
He put one hand in the front of his ragged jacket and pointed
|
|
proudly with the other.
|
|
|
|
By this time the gas-bag had swollen to a goodly rotundity and was
|
|
jerking strongly upon its lashings.
|
|
|
|
"Midsummer madness!" snorted Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
Lord John was delighted with the whole idea. "Clever old dear,
|
|
ain't he?" he whispered to me, and then louder to Challenger.
|
|
"What about a car?"
|
|
|
|
"The car will be my next care. I have already planned how it
|
|
is to be made and attached. Meanwhile I will simply show you
|
|
how capable my apparatus is of supporting the weight of each of us."
|
|
|
|
"All of us, surely?"
|
|
|
|
"No, it is part of my plan that each in turn shall descend as in
|
|
a parachute, and the balloon be drawn back by means which I shall
|
|
have no difficulty in perfecting. If it will support the weight
|
|
of one and let him gently down, it will have done all that is
|
|
required of it. I will now show you its capacity in that direction."
|
|
|
|
He brought out a lump of basalt of a considerable size, constructed
|
|
in the middle so that a cord could be easily attached to it.
|
|
This cord was the one which we had brought with us on to the plateau
|
|
after we had used it for climbing the pinnacle. It was over
|
|
a hundred feet long, and though it was thin it was very strong.
|
|
He had prepared a sort of collar of leather with many straps depending
|
|
from it. This collar was placed over the dome of the balloon,
|
|
and the hanging thongs were gathered together below, so that the
|
|
pressure of any weight would be diffused over a considerable surface.
|
|
Then the lump of basalt was fastened to the thongs, and the rope
|
|
was allowed to hang from the end of it, being passed three times
|
|
round the Professor's arm.
|
|
|
|
"I will now," said Challenger, with a smile of pleased anticipation,
|
|
"demonstrate the carrying power of my balloon." As he said so he
|
|
cut with a knife the various lashings that held it.
|
|
|
|
Never was our expedition in more imminent danger of complete annihilation.
|
|
The inflated membrane shot up with frightful velocity into the air.
|
|
In an instant Challenger was pulled off his feet and dragged
|
|
after it. I had just time to throw my arms round his ascending
|
|
waist when I was myself whipped up into the air. Lord John had
|
|
me with a rat-trap grip round the legs, but I felt that he also
|
|
was coming off the ground. For a moment I had a vision of four
|
|
adventurers floating like a string of sausages over the land that
|
|
they had explored. But, happily, there were limits to the strain
|
|
which the rope would stand, though none apparently to the lifting
|
|
powers of this infernal machine. There was a sharp crack, and we
|
|
were in a heap upon the ground with coils of rope all over us.
|
|
When we were able to stagger to our feet we saw far off in the deep
|
|
blue sky one dark spot where the lump of basalt was speeding upon its way.
|
|
|
|
"Splendid!" cried the undaunted Challenger, rubbing his injured arm.
|
|
"A most thorough and satisfactory demonstration! I could not have
|
|
anticipated such a success. Within a week, gentlemen, I promise
|
|
that a second balloon will be prepared, and that you can count upon
|
|
taking in safety and comfort the first stage of our homeward journey."
|
|
So far I have written each of the foregoing events as it occurred.
|
|
Now I am rounding off my narrative from the old camp, where Zambo
|
|
has waited so long, with all our difficulties and dangers left
|
|
like a dream behind us upon the summit of those vast ruddy crags
|
|
which tower above our heads. We have descended in safety,
|
|
though in a most unexpected fashion, and all is well with us.
|
|
In six weeks or two months we shall be in London, and it is possible
|
|
that this letter may not reach you much earlier than we do ourselves.
|
|
Already our hearts yearn and our spirits fly towards the great mother
|
|
city which holds so much that is dear to us.
|
|
|
|
It was on the very evening of our perilous adventure with Challenger's
|
|
home-made balloon that the change came in our fortunes. I have said
|
|
that the one person from whom we had had some sign of sympathy in
|
|
our attempts to get away was the young chief whom we had rescued.
|
|
He alone had no desire to hold us against our will in a strange land.
|
|
He had told us as much by his expressive language of signs.
|
|
That evening, after dusk, he came down to our little camp,
|
|
handed me (for some reason he had always shown his attentions to me,
|
|
perhaps because I was the one who was nearest his age) a small roll
|
|
of the bark of a tree, and then pointing solemnly up at the row
|
|
of caves above him, he had put his finger to his lips as a sign of
|
|
secrecy and had stolen back again to his people.
|
|
|
|
I took the slip of bark to the firelight and we examined it together.
|
|
It was about a foot square, and on the inner side there was a singular
|
|
arrangement of lines, which I here reproduce:
|
|
|
|
|
|
They were neatly done in charcoal upon the white surface, and looked
|
|
to me at first sight like some sort of rough musical score.
|
|
|
|
"Whatever it is, I can swear that it is of importance to us,"
|
|
said I. "I could read that on his face as he gave it."
|
|
|
|
"Unless we have come upon a primitive
|
|
practical joker," Summerlee suggested, "which
|
|
I should think would be one of the most elementary developments of man."
|
|
|
|
"It is clearly some sort of script," said Challenger.
|
|
|
|
"Looks like a guinea puzzle competition," remarked Lord John,
|
|
craning his neck to have a look at it. Then suddenly he stretched
|
|
out his hand and seized the puzzle.
|
|
|
|
"By George!" he cried, "I believe I've got it. The boy guessed
|
|
right the very first time. See here! How many marks are on
|
|
that paper? Eighteen. Well, if you come to think of it there
|
|
are eighteen cave openings on the hill-side above us."
|
|
|
|
"He pointed up to the caves when he gave it to me," said I.
|
|
|
|
"Well, that settles it. This is a chart of the caves. What!
|
|
Eighteen of them all in a row, some short, some deep, some branching,
|
|
same as we saw them. It's a map, and here's a cross on it.
|
|
What's the cross for? It is placed to mark one that is much
|
|
deeper than the others."
|
|
|
|
"One that goes through," I cried.
|
|
|
|
"I believe our young friend has read the riddle," said Challenger.
|
|
"If the cave does not go through I do not understand why this person,
|
|
who has every reason to mean us well, should have drawn our attention
|
|
to it. But if it does go through and comes out at the corresponding
|
|
point on the other side, we should not have more than a hundred feet
|
|
to descend."
|
|
|
|
"A hundred feet!" grumbled Summerlee.
|
|
|
|
"Well, our rope is still more than a hundred feet long," I cried.
|
|
"Surely we could get down."
|
|
|
|
"How about the Indians in the cave?" Summerlee objected.
|
|
|
|
"There are no Indians in any of the caves above our heads,"
|
|
said I. "They are all used as barns and store-houses. Why should we
|
|
not go up now at once and spy out the land?"
|
|
|
|
There is a dry bituminous wood upon the plateau--a species of araucaria,
|
|
according to our botanist--which is always used by the Indians
|
|
for torches. Each of us picked up a faggot of this, and we made
|
|
our way up weed-covered steps to the particular cave which was
|
|
marked in the drawing. It was, as I had said, empty, save for
|
|
a great number of enormous bats, which flapped round our heads
|
|
as we advanced into it. As we had no desire to draw the attention
|
|
of the Indians to our proceedings, we stumbled along in the dark
|
|
until we had gone round several curves and penetrated a considerable
|
|
distance into the cavern. Then, at last, we lit our torches.
|
|
It was a beautiful dry tunnel with smooth gray walls covered
|
|
with native symbols, a curved roof which arched over our heads,
|
|
and white glistening sand beneath our feet. We hurried eagerly
|
|
along it until, with a deep groan of bitter disappointment,
|
|
we were brought to a halt. A sheer wall of rock had appeared
|
|
before us, with no chink through which a mouse could have slipped.
|
|
There was no escape for us there.
|
|
|
|
We stood with bitter hearts staring at this unexpected obstacle.
|
|
It was not the result of any convulsion, as in the case of the
|
|
ascending tunnel. The end wall was exactly like the side ones.
|
|
It was, and had always been, a cul-de-sac.
|
|
|
|
"Never mind, my friends," said the indomitable Challenger.
|
|
"You have still my firm promise of a balloon."
|
|
|
|
Summerlee groaned.
|
|
|
|
"Can we be in the wrong cave?" I suggested.
|
|
|
|
"No use, young fellah," said Lord John, with his finger on the chart.
|
|
"Seventeen from the right and second from the left. This is the cave
|
|
sure enough."
|
|
|
|
I looked at the mark to which his finger pointed, and I gave
|
|
a sudden cry of joy.
|
|
|
|
"I believe I have it! Follow me! Follow me!"
|
|
|
|
I hurried back along the way we had come, my torch in my hand.
|
|
"Here," said I, pointing to some matches upon the ground, "is where we
|
|
lit up."
|
|
|
|
"Exactly."
|
|
|
|
"Well, it is marked as a forked cave, and in the darkness we passed
|
|
the fork before the torches were lit. On the right side as we go
|
|
out we should find the longer arm."
|
|
|
|
It was as I had said. We had not gone thirty yards before a great
|
|
black opening loomed in the wall. We turned into it to find
|
|
that we were in a much larger passage than before. Along it we
|
|
hurried in breathless impatience for many hundreds of yards.
|
|
Then, suddenly, in the black darkness of the arch in front of us we
|
|
saw a gleam of dark red light. We stared in amazement. A sheet
|
|
of steady flame seemed to cross the passage and to bar our way.
|
|
We hastened towards it. No sound, no heat, no movement came
|
|
from it, but still the great luminous curtain glowed before us,
|
|
silvering all the cave and turning the sand to powdered jewels,
|
|
until as we drew closer it discovered a circular edge.
|
|
|
|
"The moon, by George!" cried Lord John. "We are through, boys!
|
|
We are through!"
|
|
|
|
It was indeed the full moon which shone straight down the aperture
|
|
which opened upon the cliffs. It was a small rift, not larger
|
|
than a window, but it was enough for all our purposes. As we
|
|
craned our necks through it we could see that the descent was not
|
|
a very difficult one, and that the level ground was no very great
|
|
way below us. It was no wonder that from below we had not observed
|
|
the place, as the cliffs curved overhead and an ascent at the spot
|
|
would have seemed so impossible as to discourage close inspection.
|
|
We satisfied ourselves that with the help of our rope we could find
|
|
our way down, and then returned, rejoicing, to our camp to make
|
|
our preparations for the next evening.
|
|
|
|
What we did we had to do quickly and secretly, since even at this
|
|
last hour the Indians might hold us back. Our stores we would
|
|
leave behind us, save only our guns and cartridges. But Challenger
|
|
had some unwieldy stuff which he ardently desired to take
|
|
with him, and one particular package, of which I may not speak,
|
|
which gave us more labor than any. Slowly the day passed,
|
|
but when the darkness fell we were ready for our departure.
|
|
With much labor we got our things up the steps, and then,
|
|
looking back, took one last long survey of that strange land,
|
|
soon I fear to be vulgarized, the prey of hunter and prospector,
|
|
but to each of us a dreamland of glamour and romance, a land
|
|
where we had dared much, suffered much, and learned much--OUR land,
|
|
as we shall ever fondly call it. Along upon our left the neighboring
|
|
caves each threw out its ruddy cheery firelight into the gloom.
|
|
From the slope below us rose the voices of the Indians as they laughed
|
|
and sang. Beyond was the long sweep of the woods, and in the center,
|
|
shimmering vaguely through the gloom, was the great lake, the mother
|
|
of strange monsters. Even as we looked a high whickering cry,
|
|
the call of some weird animal, rang clear out of the darkness.
|
|
It was the very voice of Maple White Land bidding us good-bye. We
|
|
turned and plunged into the cave which led to home.
|
|
|
|
Two hours later, we, our packages, and all we owned, were at
|
|
the foot of the cliff. Save for Challenger's luggage we had never
|
|
a difficulty. Leaving it all where we descended, we started at once
|
|
for Zambo's camp. In the early morning we approached it, but only
|
|
to find, to our amazement, not one fire but a dozen upon the plain.
|
|
The rescue party had arrived. There were twenty Indians from the river,
|
|
with stakes, ropes, and all that could be useful for bridging the chasm.
|
|
At least we shall have no difficulty now in carrying our packages,
|
|
when to-morrow we begin to make our way back to the Amazon.
|
|
|
|
And so, in humble and thankful mood, I close this account.
|
|
Our eyes have seen great wonders and our souls are chastened by what
|
|
we have endured. Each is in his own way a better and deeper man.
|
|
It may be that when we reach Para we shall stop to refit. If we do,
|
|
this letter will be a mail ahead. If not, it will reach London
|
|
on the very day that I do. In either case, my dear Mr. McArdle,
|
|
I hope very soon to shake you by the hand.
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI
|
|
|
|
"A Procession! A Procession!"
|
|
|
|
I should wish to place upon record here our gratitude to all our
|
|
friends upon the Amazon for the very great kindness and hospitality
|
|
which was shown to us upon our return journey. Very particularly
|
|
would I thank Senhor Penalosa and other officials of the Brazilian
|
|
Government for the special arrangements by which we were helped
|
|
upon our way, and Senhor Pereira of Para, to whose forethought we
|
|
owe the complete outfit for a decent appearance in the civilized
|
|
world which we found ready for us at that town. It seemed a poor
|
|
return for all the courtesy which we encountered that we should
|
|
deceive our hosts and benefactors, but under the circumstances we
|
|
had really no alternative, and I hereby tell them that they will
|
|
only waste their time and their money if they attempt to follow
|
|
upon our traces. Even the names have been altered in our accounts,
|
|
and I am very sure that no one, from the most careful study of them,
|
|
could come within a thousand miles of our unknown land.
|
|
|
|
The excitement which had been caused through those parts of South
|
|
America which we had to traverse was imagined by us to be purely local,
|
|
and I can assure our friends in England that we had no notion
|
|
of the uproar which the mere rumor of our experiences had caused
|
|
through Europe. It was not until the Ivernia was within five hundred
|
|
miles of Southampton that the wireless messages from paper after
|
|
paper and agency after agency, offering huge prices for a short
|
|
return message as to our actual results, showed us how strained
|
|
was the attention not only of the scientific world but of the
|
|
general public. It was agreed among us, however, that no definite
|
|
statement should be given to the Press until we had met the members
|
|
of the Zoological Institute, since as delegates it was our clear
|
|
duty to give our first report to the body from which we had received
|
|
our commission of investigation. Thus, although we found Southampton
|
|
full of Pressmen, we absolutely refused to give any information,
|
|
which had the natural effect of focussing public attention upon
|
|
the meeting which was advertised for the evening of November 7th.
|
|
For this gathering, the Zoological Hall which had been the scene
|
|
of the inception of our task was found to be far too small, and it
|
|
was only in the Queen's Hall in Regent Street that accommodation
|
|
could be found. It is now common knowledge the promoters might
|
|
have ventured upon the Albert Hall and still found their space too scanty.
|
|
|
|
It was for the second evening after our arrival that the great meeting
|
|
had been fixed. For the first, we had each, no doubt, our own
|
|
pressing personal affairs to absorb us. Of mine I cannot yet speak.
|
|
It may be that as it stands further from me I may think of it,
|
|
and even speak of it, with less emotion. I have shown the reader
|
|
in the beginning of this narrative where lay the springs of my action.
|
|
It is but right, perhaps, that I should carry on the tale and show
|
|
also the results. And yet the day may come when I would not have
|
|
it otherwise. At least I have been driven forth to take part
|
|
in a wondrous adventure, and I cannot but be thankful to the force
|
|
that drove me.
|
|
|
|
And now I turn to the last supreme eventful moment of our adventure.
|
|
As I was racking my brain as to how I should best describe it,
|
|
my eyes fell upon the issue of my own Journal for the morning of
|
|
the 8th of November with the full and excellent account of my friend
|
|
and fellow-reporter Macdona. What can I do better than transcribe
|
|
his narrative--head-lines and all? I admit that the paper was
|
|
exuberant in the matter, out of compliment to its own enterprise
|
|
in sending a correspondent, but the other great dailies were hardly
|
|
less full in their account. Thus, then, friend Mac in his report:
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE NEW WORLD
|
|
GREAT MEETING AT THE QUEEN'S HALL
|
|
SCENES OF UPROAR
|
|
EXTRAORDINARY INCIDENT
|
|
WHAT WAS IT?
|
|
NOCTURNAL RIOT IN REGENT STREET
|
|
(Special)
|
|
|
|
|
|
"The much-discussed meeting of the Zoological Institute, convened to
|
|
hear the report of the Committee of Investigation sent out last year
|
|
to South America to test the assertions made by Professor Challenger
|
|
as to the continued existence of prehistoric life upon that Continent,
|
|
was held last night in the greater Queen's Hall, and it is safe
|
|
to say that it is likely to be a red letter date in the history
|
|
of Science, for the proceedings were of so remarkable and sensational
|
|
a character that no one present is ever likely to forget them."
|
|
(Oh, brother scribe Macdona, what a monstrous opening sentence!)
|
|
"The tickets were theoretically confined to members and their friends,
|
|
but the latter is an elastic term, and long before eight o'clock,
|
|
the hour fixed for the commencement of the proceedings, all parts
|
|
of the Great Hall were tightly packed. The general public, however,
|
|
which most unreasonably entertained a grievance at having been excluded,
|
|
stormed the doors at a quarter to eight, after a prolonged melee
|
|
in which several people were injured, including Inspector Scoble
|
|
of H. Division, whose leg was unfortunately broken. After this
|
|
unwarrantable invasion, which not only filled every passage, but even
|
|
intruded upon the space set apart for the Press, it is estimated that
|
|
nearly five thousand people awaited the arrival of the travelers.
|
|
When they eventually appeared, they took their places in the front
|
|
of a platform which already contained all the leading scientific men,
|
|
not only of this country, but of France and of Germany.
|
|
Sweden was also represented, in the person of Professor Sergius,
|
|
the famous Zoologist of the University of Upsala. The entrance
|
|
of the four heroes of the occasion was the signal for a remarkable
|
|
demonstration of welcome, the whole audience rising and cheering
|
|
for some minutes. An acute observer might, however, have detected
|
|
some signs of dissent amid the applause, and gathered that the
|
|
proceedings were likely to become more lively than harmonious.
|
|
It may safely be prophesied, however, that no one could have
|
|
foreseen the extraordinary turn which they were actually to take.
|
|
|
|
"Of the appearance of the four wanderers little need be said,
|
|
since their photographs have for some time been appearing in all
|
|
the papers. They bear few traces of the hardships which they are said
|
|
to have undergone. Professor Challenger's beard may be more shaggy,
|
|
Professor Summerlee's features more ascetic, Lord John Roxton's
|
|
figure more gaunt, and all three may be burned to a darker tint
|
|
than when they left our shores, but each appeared to be in most
|
|
excellent health. As to our own representative, the well-known
|
|
athlete and international Rugby football player, E. D. Malone,
|
|
he looks trained to a hair, and as he surveyed the crowd a smile
|
|
of good-humored contentment pervaded his honest but homely face."
|
|
(All right, Mac, wait till I get you alone!)
|
|
|
|
"When quiet had been restored and the audience resumed their seats
|
|
after the ovation which they had given to the travelers, the chairman,
|
|
the Duke of Durham, addressed the meeting. `He would not,'
|
|
he said, `stand for more than a moment between that vast assembly
|
|
and the treat which lay before them. It was not for him to anticipate
|
|
what Professor Summerlee, who was the spokesman of the committee,
|
|
had to say to them, but it was common rumor that their expedition
|
|
had been crowned by extraordinary success.' (Applause.) `Apparently
|
|
the age of romance was not dead, and there was common ground upon
|
|
which the wildest imaginings of the novelist could meet the actual
|
|
scientific investigations of the searcher for truth. He would
|
|
only add, before he sat down, that he rejoiced--and all of them
|
|
would rejoice--that these gentlemen had returned safe and sound
|
|
from their difficult and dangerous task, for it cannot be denied
|
|
that any disaster to such an expedition would have inflicted
|
|
a well-nigh irreparable loss to the cause of Zoological science.'
|
|
(Great applause, in which Professor Challenger was observed to join.)
|
|
|
|
"Professor Summerlee's rising was the signal for another extraordinary
|
|
outbreak of enthusiasm, which broke out again at intervals throughout
|
|
his address. That address will not be given in extenso in these columns,
|
|
for the reason that a full account of the whole adventures of
|
|
the expedition is being published as a supplement from the pen
|
|
of our own special correspondent. Some general indications will
|
|
therefore suffice. Having described the genesis of their journey,
|
|
and paid a handsome tribute to his friend Professor Challenger,
|
|
coupled with an apology for the incredulity with which his assertions,
|
|
now fully vindicated, had been received, he gave the actual course
|
|
of their journey, carefully withholding such information as would
|
|
aid the public in any attempt to locate this remarkable plateau.
|
|
Having described, in general terms, their course from the main river
|
|
up to the time that they actually reached the base of the cliffs,
|
|
he enthralled his hearers by his account of the difficulties
|
|
encountered by the expedition in their repeated attempts to mount them,
|
|
and finally described how they succeeded in their desperate endeavors,
|
|
which cost the lives of their two devoted half-breed servants."
|
|
(This amazing reading of the affair was the result of Summerlee's
|
|
endeavors to avoid raising any questionable matter at the meeting.)
|
|
|
|
"Having conducted his audience in fancy to the summit, and marooned
|
|
them there by reason of the fall of their bridge, the Professor
|
|
proceeded to describe both the horrors and the attractions of that
|
|
remarkable land. Of personal adventures he said little, but laid
|
|
stress upon the rich harvest reaped by Science in the observations
|
|
of the wonderful beast, bird, insect, and plant life of the plateau.
|
|
Peculiarly rich in the coleoptera and in the lepidoptera, forty-six new
|
|
species of the one and ninety-four of the other had been secured
|
|
in the course of a few weeks. It was, however, in the larger animals,
|
|
and especially in the larger animals supposed to have been long
|
|
extinct, that the interest of the public was naturally centered.
|
|
Of these he was able to give a goodly list, but had little doubt
|
|
that it would be largely extended when the place had been more
|
|
thoroughly investigated. He and his companions had seen at least
|
|
a dozen creatures, most of them at a distance, which corresponded
|
|
with nothing at present known to Science. These would in time
|
|
be duly classified and examined. He instanced a snake, the cast
|
|
skin of which, deep purple in color, was fifty-one feet in length,
|
|
and mentioned a white creature, supposed to be mammalian, which gave
|
|
forth well-marked phosphorescence in the darkness; also a large
|
|
black moth, the bite of which was supposed by the Indians to be
|
|
highly poisonous. Setting aside these entirely new forms of life,
|
|
the plateau was very rich in known prehistoric forms, dating back
|
|
in some cases to early Jurassic times. Among these he mentioned
|
|
the gigantic and grotesque stegosaurus, seen once by Mr. Malone at
|
|
a drinking-place by the lake, and drawn in the sketch-book of that
|
|
adventurous American who had first penetrated this unknown world.
|
|
He described also the iguanodon and the pterodactyl--two of the
|
|
first of the wonders which they had encountered. He then thrilled
|
|
the assembly by some account of the terrible carnivorous dinosaurs,
|
|
which had on more than one occasion pursued members of the party,
|
|
and which were the most formidable of all the creatures which they
|
|
had encountered. Thence he passed to the huge and ferocious bird,
|
|
the phororachus, and to the great elk which still roams upon
|
|
this upland. It was not, however, until he sketched the mysteries
|
|
of the central lake that the full interest and enthusiasm of the
|
|
audience were aroused. One had to pinch oneself to be sure that one
|
|
was awake as one heard this sane and practical Professor in cold
|
|
measured tones describing the monstrous three-eyed fish-lizards and
|
|
the huge water-snakes which inhabit this enchanted sheet of water.
|
|
Next he touched upon the Indians, and upon the extraordinary colony
|
|
of anthropoid apes, which might be looked upon as an advance upon
|
|
the pithecanthropus of Java, and as coming therefore nearer than
|
|
any known form to that hypothetical creation, the missing link.
|
|
Finally he described, amongst some merriment, the ingenious but
|
|
highly dangerous aeronautic invention of Professor Challenger,
|
|
and wound up a most memorable address by an account of the methods
|
|
by which the committee did at last find their way back to civilization.
|
|
|
|
"It had been hoped that the proceedings would end there, and that
|
|
a vote of thanks and congratulation, moved by Professor Sergius,
|
|
of Upsala University, would be duly seconded and carried;
|
|
but it was soon evident that the course of events was not destined
|
|
to flow so smoothly. Symptoms of opposition had been evident from
|
|
time to time during the evening, and now Dr. James Illingworth,
|
|
of Edinburgh, rose in the center of the hall. Dr. Illingworth
|
|
asked whether an amendment should not be taken before a resolution.
|
|
|
|
"THE CHAIRMAN: `Yes, sir, if there must be an amendment.'
|
|
|
|
"DR. ILLINGWORTH: `Your Grace, there must be an amendment.'
|
|
|
|
"THE CHAIRMAN: `Then let us take it at once.'
|
|
|
|
"PROFESSOR SUMMERLEE (springing to his feet): `Might I explain,
|
|
your Grace, that this man is my personal enemy ever since our
|
|
controversy in the Quarterly Journal of Science as to the true
|
|
nature of Bathybius?'
|
|
|
|
"THE CHAIRMAN: `I fear I cannot go into personal matters. Proceed.'
|
|
|
|
"Dr. Illingworth was imperfectly heard in part of his remarks on
|
|
account of the strenuous opposition of the friends of the explorers.
|
|
Some attempts were also made to pull him down. Being a man of
|
|
enormous physique, however, and possessed of a very powerful voice,
|
|
he dominated the tumult and succeeded in finishing his speech.
|
|
It was clear, from the moment of his rising, that he had a number
|
|
of friends and sympathizers in the hall, though they formed a minority
|
|
in the audience. The attitude of the greater part of the public
|
|
might be described as one of attentive neutrality.
|
|
|
|
"Dr. Illingworth began his remarks by expressing his high
|
|
appreciation of the scientific work both of Professor Challenger
|
|
and of Professor Summerlee. He much regretted that any personal
|
|
bias should have been read into his remarks, which were entirely
|
|
dictated by his desire for scientific truth. His position, in fact,
|
|
was substantially the same as that taken up by Professor Summerlee
|
|
at the last meeting. At that last meeting Professor Challenger had
|
|
made certain assertions which had been queried by his colleague.
|
|
Now this colleague came forward himself with the same assertions
|
|
and expected them to remain unquestioned. Was this reasonable?
|
|
(`Yes,' `No,' and prolonged interruption, during which Professor
|
|
Challenger was heard from the Press box to ask leave from the chairman
|
|
to put Dr. Illingworth into the street.) A year ago one man said
|
|
certain things. Now four men said other and more startling ones.
|
|
Was this to constitute a final proof where the matters in question
|
|
were of the most revolutionary and incredible character? There had
|
|
been recent examples of travelers arriving from the unknown with
|
|
certain tales which had been too readily accepted. Was the London
|
|
Zoological Institute to place itself in this position? He admitted
|
|
that the members of the committee were men of character. But human
|
|
nature was very complex. Even Professors might be misled by the desire
|
|
for notoriety. Like moths, we all love best to flutter in the light.
|
|
Heavy-game shots liked to be in a position to cap the tales of
|
|
their rivals, and journalists were not averse from sensational coups,
|
|
even when imagination had to aid fact in the process. Each member
|
|
of the committee had his own motive for making the most of his results.
|
|
(`Shame! shame!') He had no desire to be offensive. (`You are!'
|
|
and interruption.) The corroboration of these wondrous tales was
|
|
really of the most slender description. What did it amount to?
|
|
Some photographs. {Was it possible that in this age of ingenious
|
|
manipulation photographs could be accepted as evidence?} What more?
|
|
We have a story of a flight and a descent by ropes which precluded the
|
|
production of larger specimens. It was ingenious, but not convincing.
|
|
It was understood that Lord John Roxton claimed to have the skull
|
|
of a phororachus. He could only say that he would like to see
|
|
that skull.
|
|
|
|
"LORD JOHN ROXTON: `Is this fellow calling me a liar?' (Uproar.)
|
|
|
|
"THE CHAIRMAN: `Order! order! Dr. Illingworth, I must direct you
|
|
to bring your remarks to a conclusion and to move your amendment.'
|
|
|
|
"DR. ILLINGWORTH: `Your Grace, I have more to say, but I bow
|
|
to your ruling. I move, then, that, while Professor Summerlee
|
|
be thanked for his interesting address, the whole matter shall be
|
|
regarded as `non-proven,' and shall be referred back to a larger,
|
|
and possibly more reliable Committee of Investigation.'
|
|
|
|
"It is difficult to describe the confusion caused by this amendment.
|
|
A large section of the audience expressed their indignation at such
|
|
a slur upon the travelers by noisy shouts of dissent and cries of,
|
|
`Don't put it!' `Withdraw!' `Turn him out!' On the other hand,
|
|
the malcontents--and it cannot be denied that they were fairly numerous--
|
|
cheered for the amendment, with cries of `Order!' `Chair!' and
|
|
`Fair play!' A scuffle broke out in the back benches, and blows
|
|
were freely exchanged among the medical students who crowded
|
|
that part of the hall. It was only the moderating influence
|
|
of the presence of large numbers of ladies which prevented
|
|
an absolute riot. Suddenly, however, there was a pause, a hush,
|
|
and then complete silence. Professor Challenger was on his feet.
|
|
His appearance and manner are peculiarly arresting, and as he raised
|
|
his hand for order the whole audience settled down expectantly
|
|
to give him a hearing.
|
|
|
|
"`It will be within the recollection of many present,' said Professor
|
|
Challenger, `that similar foolish and unmannerly scenes marked
|
|
the last meeting at which I have been able to address them.
|
|
On that occasion Professor Summerlee was the chief offender,
|
|
and though he is now chastened and contrite, the matter could not
|
|
be entirely forgotten. I have heard to-night similar, but even
|
|
more offensive, sentiments from the person who has just sat down,
|
|
and though it is a conscious effort of self-effacement to come
|
|
down to that person's mental level, I will endeavor to do so,
|
|
in order to allay any reasonable doubt which could possibly exist
|
|
in the minds of anyone.' (Laughter and interruption.) `I need not
|
|
remind this audience that, though Professor Summerlee, as the head
|
|
of the Committee of Investigation, has been put up to speak to-night,
|
|
still it is I who am the real prime mover in this business, and that
|
|
it is mainly to me that any successful result must be ascribed.
|
|
I have safely conducted these three gentlemen to the spot mentioned,
|
|
and I have, as you have heard, convinced them of the accuracy of my
|
|
previous account. We had hoped that we should find upon our return
|
|
that no one was so dense as to dispute our joint conclusions.
|
|
Warned, however, by my previous experience, I have not come without
|
|
such proofs as may convince a reasonable man. As explained by
|
|
Professor Summerlee, our cameras have been tampered with by the ape-men
|
|
when they ransacked our camp, and most of our negatives ruined.'
|
|
(Jeers, laughter, and `Tell us another!' from the back.) `I have
|
|
mentioned the ape-men, and I cannot forbear from saying that some
|
|
of the sounds which now meet my ears bring back most vividly to my
|
|
recollection my experiences with those interesting creatures.'
|
|
(Laughter.) `In spite of the destruction of so many invaluable negatives,
|
|
there still remains in our collection a certain number of corroborative
|
|
photographs showing the conditions of life upon the plateau.
|
|
Did they accuse them of having forged these photographs?' (A voice,
|
|
`Yes,' and considerable interruption which ended in several men being
|
|
put out of the hall.) `The negatives were open to the inspection
|
|
of experts. But what other evidence had they? Under the conditions
|
|
of their escape it was naturally impossible to bring a large
|
|
amount of baggage, but they had rescued Professor Summerlee's
|
|
collections of butterflies and beetles, containing many new species.
|
|
Was this not evidence?' (Several voices, `No.') `Who said no?'
|
|
|
|
"DR. ILLINGWORTH (rising): `Our point is that such a collection
|
|
might have been made in other places than a prehistoric plateau.'
|
|
(Applause.)
|
|
|
|
"PROFESSOR CHALLENGER: `No doubt, sir, we have to bow to your
|
|
scientific authority, although I must admit that the name is unfamiliar.
|
|
Passing, then, both the photographs and the entomological collection,
|
|
I come to the varied and accurate information which we bring with us
|
|
upon points which have never before been elucidated. For example,
|
|
upon the domestic habits of the pterodactyl--`(A voice: `Bosh,' and
|
|
uproar)--`I say, that upon the domestic habits of the pterodactyl we
|
|
can throw a flood of light. I can exhibit to you from my portfolio
|
|
a picture of that creature taken from life which would convince you----'
|
|
|
|
"DR. ILLINGWORTH: `No picture could convince us of anything.'
|
|
|
|
"PROFESSOR CHALLENGER: `You would require to see the thing itself?'
|
|
|
|
"DR. ILLINGWORTH: `Undoubtedly.'
|
|
|
|
"PROFESSOR CHALLENGER: `And you would accept that?'
|
|
|
|
"DR. ILLINGWORTH (laughing): `Beyond a doubt.'
|
|
|
|
"It was at this point that the sensation of the evening arose--
|
|
a sensation so dramatic that it can never have been paralleled
|
|
in the history of scientific gatherings. Professor Challenger
|
|
raised his hand in the air as a signal, and at once our colleague,
|
|
Mr. E. D. Malone, was observed to rise and to make his way to the
|
|
back of the platform. An instant later he re-appeared in company
|
|
of a gigantic negro, the two of them bearing between them a large
|
|
square packing-case. It was evidently of great weight, and was slowly
|
|
carried forward and placed in front of the Professor's chair.
|
|
All sound had hushed in the audience and everyone was absorbed
|
|
in the spectacle before them. Professor Challenger drew off the top
|
|
of the case, which formed a sliding lid. Peering down into the box
|
|
he snapped his fingers several times and was heard from the Press
|
|
seat to say, `Come, then, pretty, pretty!' in a coaxing voice.
|
|
An instant later, with a scratching, rattling sound, a most horrible
|
|
and loathsome creature appeared from below and perched itself
|
|
upon the side of the case. Even the unexpected fall of the Duke
|
|
of Durham into the orchestra, which occurred at this moment,
|
|
could not distract the petrified attention of the vast audience.
|
|
The face of the creature was like the wildest gargoyle that
|
|
the imagination of a mad medieval builder could have conceived.
|
|
It was malicious, horrible, with two small red eyes as bright
|
|
as points of burning coal. Its long, savage mouth, which was
|
|
held half-open, was full of a double row of shark-like teeth.
|
|
Its shoulders were humped, and round them were draped what appeared
|
|
to be a faded gray shawl. It was the devil of our childhood
|
|
in person. There was a turmoil in the audience--someone screamed,
|
|
two ladies in the front row fell senseless from their chairs,
|
|
and there was a general movement upon the platform to follow their
|
|
chairman into the orchestra. For a moment there was danger of a
|
|
general panic. Professor Challenger threw up his hands to still
|
|
the commotion, but the movement alarmed the creature beside him.
|
|
Its strange shawl suddenly unfurled, spread, and fluttered as a
|
|
pair of leathery wings. Its owner grabbed at its legs, but too
|
|
late to hold it. It had sprung from the perch and was circling
|
|
slowly round the Queen's Hall with a dry, leathery flapping of its
|
|
ten-foot wings, while a putrid and insidious odor pervaded the room.
|
|
The cries of the people in the galleries, who were alarmed at
|
|
the near approach of those glowing eyes and that murderous beak,
|
|
excited the creature to a frenzy. Faster and faster it flew,
|
|
beating against walls and chandeliers in a blind frenzy of alarm.
|
|
`The window! For heaven's sake shut that window!' roared the Professor
|
|
from the platform, dancing and wringing his hands in an agony
|
|
of apprehension. Alas, his warning was too late! In a moment
|
|
the creature, beating and bumping along the wall like a huge moth
|
|
within a gas-shade, came upon the opening, squeezed its hideous bulk
|
|
through it, and was gone. Professor Challenger fell back into his
|
|
chair with his face buried in his hands, while the audience gave
|
|
one long, deep sigh of relief as they realized that the incident
|
|
was over.
|
|
|
|
"Then--oh! how shall one describe what took place then--
|
|
when the full exuberance of the majority and the full reaction
|
|
of the minority united to make one great wave of enthusiasm,
|
|
which rolled from the back of the hall, gathering volume as it came,
|
|
swept over the orchestra, submerged the platform, and carried the four
|
|
heroes away upon its crest?" (Good for you, Mac!) "If the audience
|
|
had done less than justice, surely it made ample amends. Every one
|
|
was on his feet. Every one was moving, shouting, gesticulating.
|
|
A dense crowd of cheering men were round the four travelers.
|
|
`Up with them! up with them!' cried a hundred voices. In a moment
|
|
four figures shot up above the crowd. In vain they strove
|
|
to break loose. They were held in their lofty places of honor.
|
|
It would have been hard to let them down if it had been wished,
|
|
so dense was the crowd around them. `Regent Street! Regent Street!'
|
|
sounded the voices. There was a swirl in the packed multitude,
|
|
and a slow current, bearing the four upon their shoulders,
|
|
made for the door. Out in the street the scene was extraordinary.
|
|
An assemblage of not less than a hundred thousand people was waiting.
|
|
The close-packed throng extended from the other side of the Langham
|
|
Hotel to Oxford Circus. A roar of acclamation greeted the four
|
|
adventurers as they appeared, high above the heads of the people,
|
|
under the vivid electric lamps outside the hall. `A procession!
|
|
A procession!' was the cry. In a dense phalanx, blocking the
|
|
streets from side to side, the crowd set forth, taking the route
|
|
of Regent Street, Pall Mall, St. James's Street, and Piccadilly.
|
|
The whole central traffic of London was held up, and many collisions
|
|
were reported between the demonstrators upon the one side and
|
|
the police and taxi-cabmen upon the other. Finally, it was not
|
|
until after midnight that the four travelers were released at
|
|
the entrance to Lord John Roxton's chambers in the Albany, and that
|
|
the exuberant crowd, having sung `They are Jolly Good Fellows'
|
|
in chorus, concluded their program with `God Save the King.'
|
|
So ended one of the most remarkable evenings that London has seen
|
|
for a considerable time."
|
|
|
|
So far my friend Macdona; and it may be taken as a fairly accurate,
|
|
if florid, account of the proceedings. As to the main incident,
|
|
it was a bewildering surprise to the audience, but not, I need
|
|
hardly say, to us. The reader will remember how I met Lord John
|
|
Roxton upon the very occasion when, in his protective crinoline,
|
|
he had gone to bring the "Devil's chick" as he called it,
|
|
for Professor Challenger. I have hinted also at the trouble which
|
|
the Professor's baggage gave us when we left the plateau, and had I
|
|
described our voyage I might have said a good deal of the worry we
|
|
had to coax with putrid fish the appetite of our filthy companion.
|
|
If I have not said much about it before, it was, of course,
|
|
that the Professor's earnest desire was that no possible rumor of
|
|
the unanswerable argument which we carried should be allowed to leak
|
|
out until the moment came when his enemies were to be confuted.
|
|
|
|
One word as to the fate of the London pterodactyl. Nothing can
|
|
be said to be certain upon this point. There is the evidence of
|
|
two frightened women that it perched upon the roof of the Queen's
|
|
Hall and remained there like a diabolical statue for some hours.
|
|
The next day it came out in the evening papers that Private Miles,
|
|
of the Coldstream Guards, on duty outside Marlborough House,
|
|
had deserted his post without leave, and was therefore courtmartialed.
|
|
Private Miles' account, that he dropped his rifle and took to his
|
|
heels down the Mall because on looking up he had suddenly seen
|
|
the devil between him and the moon, was not accepted by the Court,
|
|
and yet it may have a direct bearing upon the point at issue.
|
|
The only other evidence which I can adduce is from the log of the SS.
|
|
Friesland, a Dutch-American liner, which asserts that at nine
|
|
next morning, Start Point being at the time ten miles upon their
|
|
starboard quarter, they were passed by something between a flying
|
|
goat and a monstrous bat, which was heading at a prodigious pace
|
|
south and west. If its homing instinct led it upon the right line,
|
|
there can be no doubt that somewhere out in the wastes of the Atlantic
|
|
the last European pterodactyl found its end.
|
|
|
|
And Gladys--oh, my Gladys!--Gladys of the mystic lake, now to
|
|
be re-named the Central, for never shall she have immortality
|
|
through me. Did I not always see some hard fiber in her nature?
|
|
Did I not, even at the time when I was proud to obey her behest,
|
|
feel that it was surely a poor love which could drive a lover to
|
|
his death or the danger of it? Did I not, in my truest thoughts,
|
|
always recurring and always dismissed, see past the beauty of
|
|
the face, and, peering into the soul, discern the twin shadows
|
|
of selfishness and of fickleness glooming at the back of it?
|
|
Did she love the heroic and the spectacular for its own noble sake,
|
|
or was it for the glory which might, without effort or sacrifice,
|
|
be reflected upon herself? Or are these thoughts the vain wisdom
|
|
which comes after the event? It was the shock of my life.
|
|
For a moment it had turned me to a cynic. But already, as I write,
|
|
a week has passed, and we have had our momentous interview with Lord John
|
|
Roxton and--well, perhaps things might be worse.
|
|
|
|
Let me tell it in a few words. No letter or telegram had come to me
|
|
at Southampton, and I reached the little villa at Streatham about ten
|
|
o'clock that night in a fever of alarm. Was she dead or alive?
|
|
Where were all my nightly dreams of the open arms, the smiling face,
|
|
the words of praise for her man who had risked his life to humor
|
|
her whim? Already I was down from the high peaks and standing
|
|
flat-footed upon earth. Yet some good reasons given might still
|
|
lift me to the clouds once more. I rushed down the garden path,
|
|
hammered at the door, heard the voice of Gladys within, pushed past
|
|
the staring maid, and strode into the sitting-room. She was seated
|
|
in a low settee under the shaded standard lamp by the piano.
|
|
In three steps I was across the room and had both her hands
|
|
in mine.
|
|
|
|
"Gladys!" I cried, "Gladys!"
|
|
|
|
She looked up with amazement in her face. She was altered in some
|
|
subtle way. The expression of her eyes, the hard upward stare,
|
|
the set of the lips, was new to me. She drew back her hands.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean?" she said.
|
|
|
|
"Gladys!" I cried. "What is the matter? You are my Gladys,
|
|
are you not--little Gladys Hungerton?"
|
|
|
|
"No," said she, "I am Gladys Potts. Let me introduce you to my husband."
|
|
|
|
How absurd life is! I found myself mechanically bowing and
|
|
shaking hands with a little ginger-haired man who was coiled up
|
|
in the deep arm-chair which had once been sacred to my own use.
|
|
We bobbed and grinned in front of each other.
|
|
|
|
"Father lets us stay here. We are getting our house ready,"
|
|
said Gladys.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes," said I.
|
|
|
|
"You didn't get my letter at Para, then?"
|
|
|
|
"No, I got no letter."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, what a pity! It would have made all clear."
|
|
|
|
"It is quite clear," said I.
|
|
|
|
"I've told William all about you," said she. "We have no secrets.
|
|
I am so sorry about it. But it couldn't have been so very deep,
|
|
could it, if you could go off to the other end of the world and leave
|
|
me here alone. You're not crabby, are you?"
|
|
|
|
"No, no, not at all. I think I'll go."
|
|
|
|
"Have some refreshment," said the little man, and he added, in a
|
|
confidential way, "It's always like this, ain't it? And must be
|
|
unless you had polygamy, only the other way round; you understand."
|
|
He laughed like an idiot, while I made for the door.
|
|
|
|
I was through it, when a sudden fantastic impulse came upon me,
|
|
and I went back to my successful rival, who looked nervously at
|
|
the electric push.
|
|
|
|
"Will you answer a question?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Well, within reason," said he.
|
|
|
|
"How did you do it? Have you searched for hidden treasure,
|
|
or discovered a pole, or done time on a pirate, or flown the Channel,
|
|
or what? Where is the glamour of romance? How did you get it?"
|
|
|
|
He stared at me with a hopeless expression upon his vacuous,
|
|
good-natured, scrubby little face.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you think all this is a little too personal?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Well, just one question," I cried. "What are you? What is
|
|
your profession?"
|
|
|
|
"I am a solicitor's clerk," said he. "Second man at Johnson
|
|
and Merivale's, 41 Chancery Lane."
|
|
|
|
"Good-night!" said I, and vanished, like all disconsolate and
|
|
broken-hearted heroes, into the darkness, with grief and rage
|
|
and laughter all simmering within me like a boiling pot.
|
|
|
|
One more little scene, and I have done. Last night we all supped
|
|
at Lord John Roxton's rooms, and sitting together afterwards
|
|
we smoked in good comradeship and talked our adventures over.
|
|
It was strange under these altered surroundings to see the old,
|
|
well-known faces and figures. There was Challenger, with his
|
|
smile of condescension, his drooping eyelids, his intolerant eyes,
|
|
his aggressive beard, his huge chest, swelling and puffing as he
|
|
laid down the law to Summerlee. And Summerlee, too, there he
|
|
was with his short briar between his thin moustache and his gray
|
|
goat's-beard, his worn face protruded in eager debate as he queried
|
|
all Challenger's propositions. Finally, there was our host,
|
|
with his rugged, eagle face, and his cold, blue, glacier eyes with
|
|
always a shimmer of devilment and of humor down in the depths of them.
|
|
Such is the last picture of them that I have carried away.
|
|
|
|
It was after supper, in his own sanctum--the room of the pink
|
|
radiance and the innumerable trophies--that Lord John Roxton
|
|
had something to say to us. From a cupboard he had brought
|
|
an old cigar-box, and this he laid before him on the table.
|
|
|
|
"There's one thing," said he, "that maybe I should have spoken
|
|
about before this, but I wanted to know a little more clearly
|
|
where I was. No use to raise hopes and let them down again.
|
|
But it's facts, not hopes, with us now. You may remember that day we
|
|
found the pterodactyl rookery in the swamp--what? Well, somethin'
|
|
in the lie of the land took my notice. Perhaps it has escaped you,
|
|
so I will tell you. It was a volcanic vent full of blue clay."
|
|
The Professors nodded.
|
|
|
|
"Well, now, in the whole world I've only had to do with one place
|
|
that was a volcanic vent of blue clay. That was the great De Beers
|
|
Diamond Mine of Kimberley--what? So you see I got diamonds into
|
|
my head. I rigged up a contraption to hold off those stinking beasts,
|
|
and I spent a happy day there with a spud. This is what I got."
|
|
|
|
He opened his cigar-box, and tilting it over he poured about
|
|
twenty or thirty rough stones, varying from the size of beans
|
|
to that of chestnuts, on the table.
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps you think I should have told you then. Well, so I should,
|
|
only I know there are a lot of traps for the unwary, and that
|
|
stones may be of any size and yet of little value where color
|
|
and consistency are clean off. Therefore, I brought them back,
|
|
and on the first day at home I took one round to Spink's, and asked
|
|
him to have it roughly cut and valued."
|
|
|
|
He took a pill-box from his pocket, and spilled out of it a beautiful
|
|
glittering diamond, one of the finest stones that I have ever seen.
|
|
|
|
"There's the result," said he. "He prices the lot at a minimum of two
|
|
hundred thousand pounds. Of course it is fair shares between us.
|
|
I won't hear of anythin' else. Well, Challenger, what will you
|
|
do with your fifty thousand?"
|
|
|
|
"If you really persist in your generous view," said the Professor,
|
|
"I should found a private museum, which has long been one of
|
|
my dreams."
|
|
|
|
"And you, Summerlee?"
|
|
|
|
"I would retire from teaching, and so find time for my final
|
|
classification of the chalk fossils."
|
|
|
|
"I'll use my own," said Lord John Roxton, "in fitting a well-formed
|
|
expedition and having another look at the dear old plateau. As to you,
|
|
young fellah, you, of course, will spend yours in gettin' married."
|
|
|
|
"Not just yet," said I, with a rueful smile. "I think, if you
|
|
will have me, that I would rather go with you."
|
|
|
|
Lord Roxton said nothing, but a brown hand was stretched out to me
|
|
across the table.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The End of Project Gutenberg etext of "The Lost World"
|
|
|
|
|